Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n church_n england_n king_n 3,792 5 4.0738 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A66960 Church-government. Part V a relation of the English reformation, and the lawfulness thereof examined by the theses deliver'd in the four former parts. R. H., 1609-1678. 1687 (1687) Wing W3440; ESTC R7292 307,017 452

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

who_o shall_v be_v depute_v to_o be_v any_o chancellor_n commissary_n &c_n &c_n may_v lawful_o exercise_v all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n common_o call_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n any_o constitution_n to_o the_o contrary_a notwithstanding_o and_o see_v reformatio_fw-la legum_n ecclesiasticarum_fw-la do_fw-mi de_fw-fr officio_fw-la &_o jurisd_v omnium_fw-la judicum_fw-la rex_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o episcopos_fw-la clericos_fw-la &c_n &c_n quam_fw-la in_o laicos_fw-la plenissimam_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la tam_fw-la civilem_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesitasticam_fw-la exercere_fw-la potest_fw-la cum_fw-la omnis_fw-la jurisdictio_fw-la &_o ecclesiastica_fw-la &_o saecularis_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la tanquam_fw-la ex_fw-la uno_fw-la &_o eodem_fw-la fonte_fw-la derivantur_fw-la §_o 27_o among_o which_o jurisdiction_n i_o understand_v also_o excommunication_n suspension_n and_o deprivation_n ab_fw-la officio_fw-la of_o which_o see_v more_o below_o p._n §_o 46._o not_o that_o i_o affirm_v the_o king_n do_v ever_o claim_v the_o right_n of_o exercise_v himself_z this_o power_n of_o the_o key_n but_o that_o he_o claim_v this_o right_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o first_o thesis_n that_o no_o clergyman_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v exercise_v it_o in_o his_o dominion_n in_o any_o cause_n or_o on_o any_o person_n without_o the_o leave_n and_o appointment_n of_o he_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o this_o church_n nor_o any_o forbear_v to_o exercise_v where_o he_o the_o head_n command_v it_o as_o before_o the_o reformation_n the_o inferior_a clergy_n may_v not_o exercise_v any_o church_n censure_v contrary_a to_o the_o command_n of_o their_o lawful_a spiritual_a superior_n which_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o former_a spiritual_a superior_n be_v now_o enstate_v on_o the_o king_n on_o the_o king_n not_o as_o one_o subordinate_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n herein_o for_o so_o a_o lay-person_n in_o foro_fw-la exteriori_fw-la or_o contentioso_fw-la as_o it_o be_v call_v which_o court_n the_o church_n use_v before_o any_o prince_n be_v christian_n may_v excommunicate_v sometime_o though_o not_o ligare_fw-la or_o solvere_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la interiori_fw-la or_o poenitentiali_fw-la yet_o for_o the_o exterior_a also_o see_v what_o provision_n be_v make_v against_o this_o in_o 16._o caroli_n 1_o can._n 13._o but_o as_o one_o by_o god_n primary_o invest_v with_o the_o disposal_n thereof_o from_o who_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n within_o his_o dominion_n derive_v this_o authority_n as_o you_o have_v see_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o this_o act._n §_o 28_o again_o in_o virtue_n of_o this_o jurisdiction_n translate_v to_o the_o king_n by_o another_o act_n of_o parliament_n 25._o hen._n 8.21_o c._n the_o supreme_a power_n of_o give_v all_o manner_n of_o licence_n dispensation_n faculty_n grant_n &c_n &c_n for_o all_o law_n and_o constitution_n mere_o ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o all_o cause_n not_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o take_v from_o the_o pope_n but_o from_o the_o clergy_n too_o and_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n contrary_a to_o the_o eight_o thesis_n the_o statute_n say_v thus_o that_o whereas_o it_o stand_v with_o natural_a equity_n and_o good_a reason_n that_o in_o all_o humane_a law_n in_o all_o cause_n which_o be_v call_v spiritual_a induce_v into_o this_o realm_n your_o royal_a majesty_n and_o your_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o commons_o in_o parliament_n where_o you_o see_v the_o parliament_n supremacy_n as_o to_o admit_v or_o abrogate_a ecclesiastical_a constitution_n join_v with_o the_o king_n have_v full_a power_n and_o authority_n not_o only_o to_o dispense_v but_o also_o to_o authorise_v some_o elect_a person_n to_o dispense_v with_o those_o and_o all_o other_o humane_a law_n of_o this_o your_o realm_n as_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n and_o matter_n shall_v require_v as_o also_o the_o say_a law_n to_o abrogate_v admit_v amplify_v or_o diminish_v be_v it_o therefore_o enact_v that_o from_o henceforth_o every_o such_o licence_n dispensation_n &c_n &c_n that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n may_v lawful_o be_v grant_v without_o offend_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o law_n of_o god_n necessary_a for_o your_o highness_n or_o for_o your_o subject_n shall_v be_v grant_v in_o manner_n follow_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o grant_v they_o to_o your_o majesty_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o the_o foresay_a archbishop_n shall_v refuse_v or_o deny_v to_o grant_v any_o licence_n dispensation_n that_o then_o upon_o examination_n have_v in_o your_o court_n of_o chancery_n that_o such_o licence_n may_v be_v grant_v without_o offend_v against_o the_o scripture_n your_o highness_n shall_v command_v the_o archbishop_n to_o grant_v they_o &c_n &c_n under_o such_o penalty_n as_o shall_v be_v express_v in_o such_o writ_n of_o injunction_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o your_o highness_n for_o every_o such_o default_n of_o the_o say_a archbishop_n to_o give_v power_n by_o commission_n to_o such_o two_o spiritual_a prelate_n or_o person_n to_o be_v name_v by_o your_o highness_n as_o will_v grant_v such_o licence_n and_o dispensation_n here_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o dispense_n with_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n as_o recognize_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o archbishop_n make_v his_o delegate_n and_o after_o the_o archbishop_n the_o king_n or_o his_o court_n of_o chancery_n make_v the_o last_o judge_n what_o thing_n in_o such_o dispensation_n offend_v against_o scripture_n what_o not_o §_o 29_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o jurisdiction_n translate_v to_o the_o king_n by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n 25._o hen._n 8.20_o c._n the_o necessity_n of_o the_o metropolitan_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o patriarch_n be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o clergy_n be_v bind_v to_o admit_v and_o consecrate_v what_o person_n soever_o the_o king_n shall_v present_v to_o any_o bishopric_n upon_o penalty_n of_o incur_v a_o praemunire_n and_o the_o consecration_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o such_o and_o so_o many_o as_o the_o king_n shall_v appoint_v a_o thing_n contrary_n to_o the_o three_o thesis_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o former_a superior_a council_n and_o ruine_v the_o church_n when_o the_o prince_n be_v heretical_a see_v the_o statute_n §_o 30_o again_o it_o be_v enact_v by_o the_o statute_n abovementioned_a 26._o hen._n 8.1_o c._n that_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v full_a power_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o visit_v repress_v reform_v correct_v and_o amend_v all_o such_o error_n heresy_n &c_n &c_n as_o be_v set_v down_o but_o now_o §_o 25._o §_o 31_o again_o 25._o hen._n 8.19_o c._n it_o be_v enact_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n that_o all_o such_o canon_n and_o constitution_n provincial_a or_o synodal_n which_o be_v think_v prejudicial_a as_o i_o have_v set_v it_o down_o before_o §_o 23._o §_o 32_o the_o like_a be_v enact_v 32._o hen._n 8.26_o c._n viz._n that_o all_o such_o determination_n decree_n definition_n and_o ordinance_n as_o according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o christ_n gospel_n shall_v at_o any_o time_n hereafter_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o say_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n now_o appoint_v or_o hereafter_o to_o be_v appoint_v by_o his_o royal_a majesty_n or_o else_o by_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o england_n either_o by_o the_o one_o or_o by_o the_o other_o therefore_o be_v the_o latter_a not_o hold_v necessary_a but_o the_o former_a sufficient_a with_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o head_n in_o and_o upon_o the_o matter_n of_o christ_n religion_n and_o the_o christian_a faith_n &c_n &c_n by_o his_o majesty_n advice_n and_o confirmation_n under_o the_o great_a seal_n shall_v be_v by_o all_o his_o grace_n subject_n full_o believe_v obey_v observe_v and_o perform_v to_o all_o purpose_n and_o intent_n upon_o the_o pain_n and_o penalty_n therein_o to_o be_v comprise_v where_v note_n that_o whereas_o under_o the_o reformation_n private_a man_n be_v tie_v only_o to_o obey_v and_o believe_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n when_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o according_a to_o god_n word_n i._n e_o when_o private_a man_n think_v they_o to_o be_v so_o yet_o here_o this_o liberty_n be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v restrain_v and_o private_a man_n tie_v to_o believe_v these_o definition_n when_o set_v forth_o as_o according_a to_o god_n word_n i._n e_o when_o the_o setter_n forth_o deem_v they_o to_o be_v so_o to_o obey_v a_o thing_n define_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o to_o obey_v a_o thing_n define_v as_o be_v according_a to_o god_n word_n be_v injunction_n very_o different_a §_o 33_o again_o whereas_o the_o act_n 24._o hen._n 8.12_o c._n set_v down_o before_o §_o 25._o order_v appeals_n in_o cause_n spiritual_a to_o be_v final_o adjudge_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o province_n it_o be_v enact_v by_o parliament_n 25._o hen._n 8.19_o c._n first_o that_o
act_n which_o be_v by_o this_o author_n judge_v contrary_a to_o his_o first_o thesis_n be_v that_o statute_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o which_o order_n that_o no_o speak_n holding_z or_o do_v against_o any_o law_n call_v spiritual_a law_n make_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n and_o statute_n of_o the_o realm_n 39_o §_o 34._o p._n 39_o or_o the_o king_n prerogative_n shall_v be_v deem_v to_o be_v heresy_n from_o which_o he_o infer_v that_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n undertake_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o heresy_n now_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n do_v not_o here_o in_o my_o opinion_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o decide_v matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o enact_v that_o in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o subject_n shall_v not_o suffer_v the_o punishment_n usual_o inflict_v on_o heretic_n whether_o such_o speak_n or_o do_v be_v heresy_n or_o not_o they_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v deem_v so_o i_o e._n the_o speaker_n shall_v not_o suffer_v as_o a_o haeretick_n something_o parallel_v to_o this_o we_o have_v in_o that_o statute_n of_o much_o concernment_n to_o use_v our_o author_n expression_n of_o another_o act_n make_v 23._o eliz._n c._n 1._o wherein_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o the_o person_n who_o shall_v withdraw_v any_o of_o the_o queen_n majesty_n subject_n from_o the_o religion_n establish_v by_o law_n to_o the_o romish_a religtion_n shall_v be_v to_o all_o intent_n adjudge_v as_o traitor_n and_o shall_v suffer_v as_o in_o case_n of_o high_a treason_n and_o the_o like_a of_o person_n willing_o reconcile_v where_o without_o dispute_v whether_o every_o such_o reconciler_n or_o reconcile_v be_v necessary_o for_o that_o act_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la a_o traitor_n all_o that_o be_v here_o enact_v be_v that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v as_o such_o for_o it_o be_v undoubted_o within_o the_o reach_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n to_o ordain_v where_o they_o will_v inflict_v or_o not_o inflict_v their_o secular_a punishment_n without_o be_v accountable_a for_o this_o to_o any_o authority_n under_o god_n and_o it_o seem_v very_o hard_o that_o if_o a_o subject_a express_v himself_o or_o act_n against_o such_o law_n of_o a_o foreigner_n as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o his_o own_o country_n there_o the_o prince_n can_v exempt_v he_o from_o a_o writ_n de_fw-fr haeretico_fw-la comburendo_fw-la without_o invade_v the_o church_n right_a another_o act_n condemn_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o one_a and_o 2d_o thesis_n be_v the_o convocation_n grant_v to_o certain_a person_n to_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o king_n authority_n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n 56._o §._o 43._o p._n 56._o and_o pursuant_n to_o this_o 42_o article_n of_o religion_n publish_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n edward_n in_o the_o 6_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n now_o not_o to_o engage_v myself_o in_o a_o dispute_n whether_o these_o article_n be_v not_o real_o what_o in_o the_o title_n prefix_v they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v articuli_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o synodo_fw-la london_n a._n d._n 1552._o ad_fw-la tollendam_fw-la opinionum_fw-la dissentionem_fw-la &_o consensum_fw-la verae_fw-la religionis_fw-la firmandum_fw-la inter_fw-la episcopos_fw-la &_o alios_fw-la eruditos_fw-la viros_fw-la convenerat_fw-la regius_fw-la autoritate_fw-la in_o lucem_fw-la editi_fw-la i_o shall_v only_o accept_v of_o what_o be_v by_o he_o grant_v that_o de_fw-fr illis_fw-la convenerat_fw-la inter_fw-la episcopos_fw-la &_o alios_fw-la eruditos_fw-la viros_fw-la qui_fw-la erant_fw-la pars_fw-la aliqua_fw-la de_fw-la synodo_fw-la london_n 187._o §._o 166._o p._n 187._o so_o that_o here_o be_v only_o a_o part_n of_o the_o synod_n employ_v in_o draw_v up_o these_o article_n and_o not_o any_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a transfer_v from_o ecclesiastical_a person_n to_o secular_a which_o be_v by_o he_o to_o have_v be_v prove_v another_o inference_n which_o he_o deduce_v from_o these_o thesis_n be_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n 214._o §._o 185._o p._n 214._o now_o how_o far_o the_o regal_a supremacy_n be_v by_o we_o extend_v will_v best_o be_v learn_v from_o our_o article_n 37._o article_n art_n 37._o the_o king_n majesty_n have_v the_o chief_a power_n in_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o other_o his_o dominion_n unto_o who_o the_o chief_a government_n of_o all_o estate_n of_o this_o realm_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a in_o all_o cause_n do_v appertain_v and_o be_v not_o or_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n so_o far_o for_o the_o extent_n of_o this_o power_n but_o now_o for_o the_o restraint_n where_o we_o attribute_v to_o the_o king_n majesty_n the_o chief_a government_n by_o which_o title_n we_o understand_v the_o mind_n of_o some_o slanderous_a folk_n to_o be_v offend_v we_o give_v not_o to_o our_o prince_n the_o minister_a either_o of_o god_n word_n or_o of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o thing_n the_o injunction_n also_o late_o set_v forth_o by_o q._n elizabeth_n do_v most_o plain_o testify_v but_o that_o only_a prerogative_n which_o we_o see_v to_o have_v be_v give_v always_o to_o all_o godly_a prince_n in_o holy_a scripture_n by_o god_n himself_o that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v rule_v all_o estate_n and_o degree_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n by_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a and_o restrain_v with_o the_o civil_a sword_n the_o stubborn_a &_o evil_a doer_n it_o be_v therefore_o by_o our_o author_n to_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o who_o give_v no_o more_o to_o their_o prince_n then_o have_v be_v give_v always_o to_o all_o godly_a prince_n in_o holy_a scripture_n by_o god_n himself_o do_v alienate_v to_o the_o secular_a governor_n any_o authority_n or_o office_n which_o they_o the_o clergy_n have_v receive_v and_o be_v charge_v with_o by_o christ_n with_o a_o command_n to_o execute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v a_o contradiction_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o he_o to_o reconcile_v that_o by_o this_o oath_n or_o any_o other_o act_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n a_o great_a power_n be_v either_o assume_v by_o herself_o or_o give_v to_o she_o by_o other_o then_o be_v consistent_a with_o that_o authority_n that_o be_v give_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o church_n will_v be_v very_o difficult_a for_o any_o reasonable_a man_n to_o conceive_v who_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o injunction_n of_o this_o queen_n to_o which_o this_o very_a article_n refer_v we_o 1684._o we_o sparrow_n collection_n pag._n 83._o lond._n 1684._o where_o she_o declare_v that_o she_o neither_o do_v nor_o ever_o will_v challenge_v any_o authority_n but_o what_o be_v challenge_v and_o late_o use_v by_o the_o noble_a king_n of_o famous_a memory_n king_n henry_n the_o 8_o and_o king_n edward_n the_o 6_o which_o be_v and_o be_v of_o ancient_a time_n due_a to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n that_o be_v under_o god_n to_o have_v sovereignty_n and_o rule_n over_o all_o manner_n of_o person_n bear_v within_o these_o her_o realm_n dominion_n and_o country_n of_o what_o estate_n either_o ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a soever_o they_o be_v so_o as_o no_o other_o foreign_a power_n shall_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o superiority_n over_o they_o and_o if_o any_o person_n that_o have_v conceit_v any_o other_o sense_n of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o say_a oath_n shall_v accept_v the_o same_o oath_n with_o this_o interpretation_n sense_n or_o meaning_n her_o majesty_n be_v well_o please_v to_o accept_v every_o such_o in_o that_o behalf_n as_o her_o good_a and_o obedient_a subject_n and_o shall_v acquit_v they_o of_o all_o manner_n of_o penalty_n contain_v in_o the_o act_n therein_o mention_v against_o such_o as_o shall_v peremptory_o and_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o same_o oath_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o this_o injunction_n that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n here_o state_v what_o authority_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n and_o what_o to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n far_o than_o that_o the_o queen_n as_o just_o she_o may_v challenge_v what_o be_v due_a of_o ancient_a time_n to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o neither_o do_v nor_o will_v challenge_v more_o but_o what_o that_o be_v be_v not_o here_o determine_v and_o she_o be_v content_a without_o such_o determination_n if_o any_o person_n will_v take_v this_o oath_n in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o only_o to_o exclude_v all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n whether_o ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a another_o act_n which_o he_o find_v repugnant_a to_o his_o his_o one_a 36._o pag._n 36._o thesis_n be_v king_n henry_n the_o eth_n claim_v a_o right_n that_o no_o clergyman_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v exercise_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o his_o dominion_n in_o any_o cause_n or_o on_o any_o person_n without_o his_o leave_n
of_o several_a time_n justify_v and_o condemn_v the_o same_o thing_n i_o be_o very_a well_o convince_v though_o not_o from_o our_o author_n proof_n that_o the_o pope_n stand_v not_o alone_o in_o his_o judgement_n for_o certain_o he_o that_o hold_v both_o side_n of_o a_o contradiction_n can_v be_v singular_a in_o his_o opinion_n the_o pope_n judge_v for_o the_o divorce_n in_o the_o 17_o paragraph_n when_o the_o dispensation_n be_v procure_v from_o he_o but_o here_o in_o the_o 19_o he_o judge_n against_o it_o but_o our_o author_n mistake_v that_o pope_n character_n when_o he_o represent_v he_o as_o pass_a sentence_n according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o this_o whole_a procedure_n he_o act_v by_o no_o other_o principle_n than_o his_o passion_n or_o interest_n and_o therefore_o this_o author_n observe_v a_o great_a decorum_n when_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o same_o page_n that_o the_o king_n have_v now_o no_o hope_n of_o obtain_v a_o divorce_n from_o the_o pope_n he_o do_v not_o pretend_v the_o reason_n to_o have_v be_v because_o the_o pope_n be_v convince_v of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o it_o but_o because_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o stand_v much_o in_o awe_n of_o the_o emperor_n victorious_a in_o italy_n and_o a_o near_a kinsman_n and_o favourer_n of_o queen_n katherine_n he_o need_v not_o therefore_o to_o have_v instanced_a in_o the_o different_a opinion_n of_o diverse_a man_n since_o the_o act_n of_o the_o pope_n alone_o will_v sufficient_o have_v convince_v we_o that_o the_o several_a interest_n of_o several_a time_n justify_v and_o condemn_v the_o same_o thing_n now_o to_o return_v to_o our_o matter_n in_o hand_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v he_o have_v digress_v for_o 2_o page_n to_o no_o other_o purpose_n then_o to_o show_v that_o his_o parathese_n be_v of_o the_o same_o stamp_n with_o his_o parenthesis_n the_o aforesaid_a sum_n of_o 100000_o l_o spend_v upon_o the_o university_n abroad_o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v again_o a_o transcript_n from_o dr._n bailie_n and_o i_o need_v say_v no_o worse_o of_o it_o §_o 20_o the_o king_n he_o say_v except_v at_o the_o limitation_n of_o quantum_fw-la per_fw-la legem_fw-la christi_fw-la licet_fw-la in_o the_o title_n give_v he_o by_o the_o clergy_n and_o so_o at_o last_o upon_o renew_v threat_n this_o clause_n also_o be_v procure_v to_o be_v omit_v see_v antiquit._n britannic_n the_o author_n know_v or_o may_v have_v know_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o antiquity_n be_v in_o this_o mistake_v for_o dr._n burnet_n 244._o burnet_n hist_o v._o 1._o p._n 112._o from_o the_o cabala_n p._n 244._o have_v upon_o this_o passage_n in_o a._n bp._n parker_n observe_v that_o king_n henry_n when_o the_o province_n of_o york_n demur_v upon_o grant_v the_o king_n the_o title_n of_o head_n as_o improper_a in_o his_o answer_n to_o they_o urge_v that_o word_n be_v not_o always_o understand_v in_o the_o strict_a sense_n and_o mention_n the_o explanation_n make_v in_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n that_o it_o be_v in_o so_o far_o as_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n according_o it_o be_v represent_v as_o pass_v with_o this_o qualification_n by_o our_o other_o 2._o other_o herbert_n p._n 348._o full._n eccl._n hist_o book_n 5._o p._n 184._o dr._n heylin_n ref._n justif_a §_o 2._o historian_n he_o refer_v we_o again_o to_o dr._n bailie_n but_o the_o reader_n i_o presume_v have_v have_v enough_o of_o he_o already_o the_o exclude_v the_o patriarch_n be_v he_o say_v contrary_a to_o his_o four_o thesis_n it_o be_v pity_v these_o thesis_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o last_o century_n for_o the_o use_v of_o those_o roman-catholics_a who_o exclude_v the_o pope_n they_o can_v find_v no_o ground_n for_o the_o papal_a authority_n from_o scripture_n antiquity_n or_o reason_n but_o they_o may_v perhaps_o have_v be_v convince_v from_o our_o author_n thesis_n which_o be_v a_o authority_n distinct_a to_o all_o those_o this_o paragraph_n conclude_v with_o the_o mangle_a citation_n from_o dr._n hammond_n which_o have_v already_o be_v animadvert_v on_o and_o be_v a_o sore_n which_o if_o i_o do_v not_o here_o again_o touch_v upon_o it_o be_v because_o i_o will_v not_o gall_v he_o too_o much_o cranmer_n be_v say_v to_o have_v divorce_v the_o king_n from_o q._n katherine_n after_o he_o have_v exclude_v the_o pope_n authority_n out_o of_o his_o dominion_n §_o 22_o the_o divorce_n 144._o divorce_n burn._n v._n 1._o p._n 131._o compare_v with_o p._n 144._o be_v pronounce_v in_o may_n 1533_o and_o the_o extinguish_v act_n do_v not_o pass_v till_o march_v follow_v cranmer_n in_o the_o sentence_n be_v call_v legate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n by_o this_o instance_n it_o be_v plain_a how_o implicit_o our_o author_n follow_v 73._o follow_v sand_n p._n 73._o sanders_n in_o his_o chronology_n as_o well_o as_o history_n warham_n a_o favourer_n of_o the_o queen_n cause_n 55._o cause_n sand._n p._n 55._o varamus_fw-la qui_fw-la summo_fw-la study_v reginae_fw-la part_n adjuverat_fw-la say_v sanders_n this_o favourer_n of_o the_o queen_n cause_n when_o the_o marriage_n be_v first_o propose_v 35._o propose_v burn._n v._n 1._o p._n 35._o declare_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n he_o induce_v 36._o induce_v ibid._n p._n 36._o the_o 8_o the_o hen._n the_o 8_o prince_n when_o of_o age_n to_o enter_v his_o protestation_n against_o it_o 38._o it_o ibid._n p._n 38._o he_o subscribe_v and_o persuade_v the_o other_o bishop_n to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o it_o he_o earnest_o press_v fisher_n to_o concur_v and_o upon_o refusal_n make_v another_o set_n that_o bishop_n name_n and_o seal_v to_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o other_o bishop_n these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o favour_n which_o warham_n show_v to_o the_o queen_n cause_n §_o 23_o the_o clergy_n have_v declare_v the_o king_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v reasonable_a that_o no_o act_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v stand_v good_a without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o head_n this_o be_v a_o wild_a and_o senseless_a calumny_n the_o c._n of_o england_n think_v no_o act_n which_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a want_n the_o king_n concurrence_n her_o sacrament_n and_o her_o censure_n she_o esteem_v valid_a independent_o on_o all_o humane_a authority_n her_o charter_n she_o derive_v immediate_o from_o christ_n the_o clergy_n do_v indeed_o bind_v themselves_o not_o to_o promulge_v and_o execute_v any_o canon_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n but_o the_o execution_n of_o which_o they_o abridge_v themselves_o be_v such_o as_o have_v influence_n on_o the_o civil_a right_n of_o the_o subject_a and_o therefore_o necessary_o require_v the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o supreme_a civil_a power_n he_o cite_v from_o dr._n heylin_n a_o answer_n make_v by_o gardiner_n and_o allow_v by_o the_o convocation_n to_o a_o parliamentary_a remonstrance_n but_o either_o my_o 1681._o my_o reform_v just_a in_o the_o historical_a tract_n edit_n lond._n 1681._o edition_n of_o heylin_n or_o which_o i_o be_o the_o rather_o apt_a to_o think_v from_o the_o infidelity_n of_o his_o other_o citation_n this_o author_n deceive_v i_o the_o next_o paragraph_n descant_v upon_o the_o request_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o the_o law_n ecclesiastical_a may_v be_v review_v by_o 32_o commissioner_n §_o 24_o this_o he_o complain_v be_v never_o sufficient_o weigh_v by_o dr._n heylin_n dr._n hammond_n nor_o dr._n fern._n the_o business_n of_o those_o advocate_n be_v to_o defend_v the_o reformation_n and_o it_o be_v one_o of_o our_o author_n be_v pertinent_a remark_n that_o they_o do_v not_o meddle_v with_o what_o be_v not_o reform_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v a_o design_n of_o which_o nothing_o worse_o can_v be_v say_v than_o that_o it_o do_v not_o take_v effect_n if_o it_o trouble_v he_o that_o canon_n contrary_a to_o the_o king_n prerogative_n law_n of_o the_o land_n good_a of_o the_o subject_a and_o law_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v reform_v no_o honest_a man_n can_v pity_v he_o if_o he_o quarrel_v with_o the_o competency_n of_o the_o reviewer_n that_o have_v be_v speak_v to_o by_o the_o 36._o the_o animadv_n p._n 36._o animadverter_n if_o by_o canon_n synodal_n he_o will_v understand_v the_o constitution_n of_o any_o other_o synod_n but_o those_o of_o this_o nation_n it_o be_v out_o of_o his_o wont_a pride_n to_o outface_v the_o statute_n for_o the_o c._n the_o forasmuch_o as_o such_o canon_n constitution_n and_o ordinance_n as_o heretofore_o have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o clergy_n of_o this_o realm_n can_v now_o be_v view_v examine_v and_o determine_v by_o the_o king_n be_v highness_n and_o the_o 32_o person_n according_a to_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o clergy_n 25._o hen._n 8.19_o c._n act_n express_o limit_n the_o review_n to_o those_o canon_n which_o have_v be_v enact_v by_o english_a synod_n and_o have_v no_o
usurp_a papal_a supremacy_n 69._o examine_v champ._n 2._o c_o p._n 69._o than_o these_o bishop_n do_v retract_v their_o acknowledge_v of_o such_o a_o regal_a supremacy_n and_o that_o upon_o deprivation_n of_o their_o bishopric_n and_o imprisonment_n of_o their_o person_n some_o in_o king_n edward_n and_o some_o in_o qu._n elizabeth_n day_n retract_v &c_n &c_n i_o suppose_v for_o this_o reason_n because_o by_o sad_a experience_n they_o see_v it_o much_o enlarge_v beyond_o those_o bound_n within_o which_o only_o they_o former_o have_v maintain_v it_o just_a and_o four_o by_o the_o early_a act_n of_o parliament_n 24._o henry_n 8.12_o c._n where_o in_o the_o preface_n it_o be_v say_v that_o when_o any_o cause_n of_o the_o law_n divine_a come_v in_o question_n that_o part_n of_o the_o body_n politic_a call_v the_o spirituality_n now_o be_v usual_o call_v the_o english_a church_n be_v sufficient_a and_o meet_v of_o itself_o without_o the_o intermeddle_a of_o any_o exterior_a person_n or_o person_n to_o declare_v and_o determine_v all_o such_o doubt_n and_o where_o in_o the_o act_n it_o be_v order_v that_o such_o cause_n shall_v have_v their_o appeal_n from_o the_o archdeacon_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o province_n and_o there_o to_o be_v definitive_o and_o final_o adjudge_v final_o i._n e_o without_o any_o further_a appeal_n to_o the_o king_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v show_v that_o express_o this_o authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n to_o repress_v reform_v correct_v and_o amend_v all_o such_o error_n heresy_n abuse_n enormity_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v which_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n ought_v or_o may_v lawful_o be_v repress_v reform_v &c_n &c_n any_o foreign_a law_n foreign_a authority_n prescription_n or_o any_o thing_n or_o thing_n to_o the_o contrary_a thereof_o notwithstanding_o though_o it_o be_v allow_v to_o the_o king_n as_o a_o branch_n of_o his_o supremacy_n by_o the_o parliament_n be_v concede_v or_o vote_v by_o the_o clergy_n or_o pretend_v to_o be_v so_o but_o be_v build_v only_o by_o consequence_n upon_o the_o clergy_n recognise_v he_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o that_o act_n 26._o hen._n 8.1_o c._n by_o these_o thing_n therefore_o it_o seem_v that_o as_o yet_o all_o the_o jurisdiction_n for_o determine_v spiritual_a controversy_n that_o be_v take_v from_o the_o pope_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o community_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n or_o final_o place_v in_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n but_o you_o will_v find_v by_o what_o follow_v that_o it_o long_o rest_v not_o here_o but_o be_v short_o after_o remove_v from_o hence_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n and_o as_o it_o be_v thus_o with_o the_o clergy_n so_o in_o the_o laity_n also_o in_o the_o parliament_n its_o self_n in_o the_o new_a power_n give_v of_o alter_v and_o dispense_n with_o former_a church_n law_n 25._o hen._n 8.21_o c._n there_o seem_v at_o first_o to_o have_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o jealousy_n upon_o the_o new_a introduce_v supremacy_n leave_v it_o may_v afterward_o proceed_v to_o some_o exorbitancy_n as_o to_o change_v something_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n therefore_o in_o the_o forename_a act_n they_o insert_v this_o proviso_n provide_v always_o this_o act_n nor_o any_o thing_n therein_o contain_v shall_v be_v hereafter_o interpret_v that_o your_o grace_n your_o noble_n and_o subject_n intend_v by_o the_o same_o to_o decline_v and_o vary_v from_o the_o congregation_n of_o christ_n church_n in_o any_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n necessary_a concern_v the_o very_a article_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n of_o christendom_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o scripture_n necessary_a for_o your_o and_o their_o salvation_n but_o only_o to_o make_v a_o ordinance_n by_o polity_n necessary_a and_o convenient_a to_o repress_v vice_n and_o for_o good_a conservation_n of_o this_o realm_n in_o peace_n unity_n and_o tranquillity_n from_o rapine_n and_o spoil_n ensue_a much_o the_o old_a ancient_a custom_n of_o this_o realm_n on_o that_o behalf_n not_o mind_v to_o seek_v for_o any_o relief_n succour_n or_o remedy_n for_o any_o worldly_a thing_n and_o humane_a law_n in_o any_o case_n of_o necessity_n but_o within_o this_o realm_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o your_o highness_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v a_o imperial_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o same_o and_o not_o oblige_v in_o any_o worldly_a cause_n to_o any_o superior_a upon_o which_o proviso_n bishop_n bramhal_o have_v this_o note_n schism_n guard_v p._n 63._o that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v contain_v in_o this_o law_n for_o the_o abolish_n or_o translation_n i._n e_fw-la from_o the_o clergy_n of_o power_n mere_o and_o pure_o spiritual_a it_o be_v retract_v by_o this_o proviso_n at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v enact_v chap._n iii_o the_o supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n claim_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o head_n ii_o head_n §_o 26_o ii_o we_o have_v see_v how_o far_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n also_o at_o first_o seem_v to_o have_v proceed_v in_o the_o advance_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n prince_n concern_v what_o supremacy_n be_v afterward_o by_o degree_n confer_v on_o or_o also_o claim_v by_o the_o prince_n now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o propose_v to_o you_o concern_v what_o supremacy_n be_v afterward_o by_o degree_n confer_v on_o or_o also_o claim_v by_o the_o prince_n after_o the_o title_n then_o of_o supreme_a be_v thus_o yield_v by_o the_o clergy_n as_o likewise_o that_o they_o will_v thenceforward_a enact_v or_o publish_v no_o synodal_n decree_n or_o constitution_n without_o the_o consent_n first_o obtain_v of_o this_o their_o declare_a supreme_a it_o be_v thus_o enact_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o parliament_n 26._o hen._n 8.1_o c._n 8_o 1._o in_o the_o time_n of_o h._n the_o 8_o that_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v and_o enjoy_v unite_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n all_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o say_a dignity_n of_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o same_o church_n belong_v which_v jurisdiction_n how_o far_o it_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v extend_v see_v 1._o eliz._n 1._o c._n where_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o such_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n and_o preeminency_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a as_o by_o any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n have_v heretofore_o be_v or_o may_v lawful_o be_v exercise_v or_o use_v for_o the_o visitation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a state_n and_o person_n and_o for_o reformation_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o error_n heresy_n schism_n &c_n &c_n shall_v for_o ever_o by_o authority_n of_o this_o present_a parliament_n be_v unite_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o further_o see_v the_o act_n 37._o hen._n 8.17_o which_o run_v thus_o whereas_o your_o most_o royal_a majesty_n be_v just_o supreme_a head_n in_o earth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o have_v full_a authority_n to_o correct_v and_o punish_v all_o manner_n of_o heresy_n error_n vice_n and_o to_o exercise_v all_o other_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n common_o call_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n nevertheless_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o adherent_n have_v in_o their_o council_n and_o synod_n provincial_a establish_v divers_a ordinance_n that_o no_o layman_n may_v exercise_v any_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a or_o be_v any_o judge_n in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a court_n which_o ordinance_n or_o constitution_n stand_v in_o their_o effect_n do_v sound_a to_o be_v direct_o repugnant_a to_o your_o majesty_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o prerogative_n royal_a your_o grace_n be_v a_o layman_n and_o whereas_o albeit_o the_o say_a decree_n by_o a_o statute_n 25._o hen._n 8._o be_v utter_o abolish_v yet_o because_o the_o contrary_a thereunto_o be_v not_o use_v by_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n &c_n &c_n who_o have_v no_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a but_o by_o under_z and_o from_o your_o royal_a majesty_n it_o give_v occasion_n to_o evil_n dispose_v person_n little_a to_o regard_n and_o to_o think_v the_o proceed_n and_o censure_n ecclesiastical_a make_v by_o your_o highness_n and_o your_o vicegerent_n commissary_n &c_n &c_n to_o be_v of_o little_a or_o none_o effect_n whereby_o the_o people_n have_v not_o such_o reverence_n to_o your_o most_o godly_a injunction_n as_o become_v they_o in_o consideration_n that_o your_o majesty_n be_v the_o only_a and_o undoubted_a supreme_a head_n &c_n &c_n to_o who_o by_o holy_a scripture_n all_o power_n and_o authority_n be_v whole_o give_v to_o hear_v and_o determine_v all_o manner_n of_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o to_o correct_v vice_n &c_n &c_n may_v it_o therefore_o be_v enact_v that_o all_o person_n as_o well_o lay_v as_o those_o that_o be_v marry_v be_v doctor_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n
minister_n only_o his_o ecclesiastical_a sheriff_n to_o execute_v his_o mandate_n and_o of_o this_o act_n such_o use_n be_v make_v though_o possible_o beyond_o the_o true_a intention_n of_o it_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o time_n be_v not_o in_o a_o capacity_n of_o confer_v order_n but_o as_o they_o be_v thereunto_o impower_v by_o especial_a licence_n where_v he_o quote_v out_o of_o sander_n what_o be_v set_v down_o below_o §_o 145._o which_o say_v he_o be_v look_v on_o by_o queen_n mary_n not_o only_o as_o a_o dangerous_a diminution_n of_o the_o episcopal_a power_n but_o as_o a_o odious_a innovation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n she_o cause_v this_o act_n to_o be_v repeal_v leave_v the_o bishop_n to_o depend_v on_o their_o former_a i._n e_fw-la divine_v institution_n and_o to_o act_v in_o all_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o their_o jurisdiction_n in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o under_o their_o own_o seal_n as_o in_o former_a time_n in_o which_o estate_n they_o have_v continue_v without_o any_o legal_a interruption_n from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o thus_o he._n now_o to_o go_v on_o consequent_o we_o find_v in_o 2._o edw_n 6.1_o c._n the_o king_n and_o parliament_n authorise_v arch-bishop_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o act_n to_o take_v information_n concern_v the_o not_o use_v of_o the_o form_n of_o common-prayer_n &c_n &c_n therein_o prescribe_v and_o to_o punish_v the_o same_o by_o excommunication_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o stat._n 5_o 6._o edw._n 6.1_o c._n it_o be_v enact_v likewise_o concern_v the_o same_o common-prayer_n book_n establish_v by_o parliament_n that_o all_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n &c_n &c_n shall_v have_v full_a power_n and_o authority_n by_o this_o act_n to_o correct_v and_o punish_v by_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n all_o person_n who_o shall_v offend_v against_o this_o act_n and_o statute_n which_o clause_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o act_n and_o the_o like_a imply_v that_o the_o bishop_n may_v not_o excommunicate_a and_o use_v the_o church_n censure_v for_o that_o matter_n without_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n licence_n or_o aught_o to_o excommunicate_v in_o all_o matter_n wherein_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n command_v it_o whereby_o we_o may_v understand_v more_o clear_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o act_n forementioned_a p._n 44._o §_o 26._o 26._o hen._n 8.1_o c._n and_o that_o 1._o eliz._n 1._o c._n that_o the_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n there_o ascribe_v to_o the_o king_n or_o queen_n involve_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o excommunication_n as_o well_o as_o other_o not_o for_o the_o king_n to_o exercise_v this_o himself_n but_o to_o appoint_v when_o and_o in_o what_o matter_n the_o clergy_n within_o his_o realm_n shall_v execute_v or_o not_o execute_v it_o so_o that_o they_o derive_v the_o power_n of_o exercise_v of_o this_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n in_o his_o dominion_n also_o from_o the_o king_n contrary_a to_o the_o second_o and_o three_o thesis_n and_o indeed_o if_o the_o clergy_n may_v not_o make_v nor_o enjoin_v any_o new_a or_o old_a spiritual_a law_n may_v not_o correct_v what_o they_o judge_v heresy_n error_n vice_n &c_n &c_n without_o the_o king_n consent_n have_v thereto_o see_v the_o act_n set_v down_o before_o §_o 31_o 32_o 33_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o excommunicate_v his_o subject_n without_o his_o consent_n for_o not_o obey_v such_o law_n or_o for_o be_v think_v guilty_a of_o such_o crime_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n i_o suppose_v of_o dr._n heylins_n observation_n hist_o of_o reform_v p._n 94._o that_o in_o those_o time_n the_o wing_n of_o episcopal_a authority_n be_v so_o clip_v that_o it_o be_v scarce_o able_a to_o fly_v abroad_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n wherewith_o the_o bishop_n former_o keep_v in_o awe_n both_o priest_n and_o people_n not_o have_v be_v in_o use_n and_o practice_n from_o the_o first_o of_o king_n edward_n and_o of_o that_o suit_n of_o latimer_n to_o the_o king_n in_o his_o sermon_n before_o he_o quote_v ibid._n that_o the_o discipline_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o excommunication_n of_o open_a sinner_n may_v be_v restore_v and_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o england_n §_o 41_o consequently_n in_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n 3_o and_o 4._o edw._n 6.11_o c._n we_o find_v the_o king_n power_n in_o spiritual_n delegated_a to_o thirty_o two_o person_n half_a secular_o to_o be_v nominate_v by_o he_o as_o be_v do_v in_o henry_n the_o eighth_n day_n in_o 35._o hen._n 8.16_o c._n 27._o hen._n 8.15_o c._n 25.19_o c._n who_o be_v authorize_v to_o reform_v the_o former_a law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o these_o reform_a law_n only_o establish_v by_o a_o major_a part_n of_o they_o and_o publish_v by_o the_o king_n proclamation_n thence_o forward_o to_o stand_v in_o force_n the_o statute_n run_v thus_o albeit_o the_o king_n majesty_n ought_v most_o just_o to_o have_v the_o government_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o the_o determination_n of_o their_o cause_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o temporal_a therefore_o you_o see_v the_o statute_n concern_v the_o bishop_n determine_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n repeal_v in_o statute_n 1._o edw._n 6.12_o c._n abovementioned_a yet_o the_o same_o as_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n have_v not_o of_o long_a time_n be_v put_v in_o ure_n nor_o exercise_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o usurp_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o perfect_o understand_v nor_o know_v of_o his_o subject_n and_o therefore_o may_v it_o please_v his_o highness_n that_o it_o may_v be_v enact_v &c_n &c_n that_o the_o king_n majesty_n shall_v from_o henceforth_o during_o three_o year_n have_v full_a power_n to_o nominate_v and_o assign_v by_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o council_n sixteen_o person_n of_o the_o clergy_n whereof_z four_z to_o be_v bishop_n and_o sixteen_o of_o the_o temporalty_n whereof_z four_z to_o be_v learn_v in_o the_o common_a law_n of_o this_o realm_n to_o peruse_v and_o examine_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o long_a time_n here_o use_v and_o to_o gather_v order_n and_o compile_v such_o law_n ecclesiastical_a as_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o his_o majesty_n his_o say_a council_n and_o they_o or_o the_o more_o part_n of_o they_o convenient_a to_o be_v use_v practise_a or_o set_v forth_o within_o this_o his_o realm_n in_o all_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a court_n and_o conventions_n and_o that_o such_o law_n compile_v by_o the_o say_v thirty_o two_o person_n or_o the_o more_o number_n of_o they_o and_o set_v forth_o by_o the_o king_n majesty_n proclamation_n shall_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o present_a act_n be_v only_o take_v and_o put_v in_o ure_n for_o the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o no_o other_o any_o law_n statute_n or_o prescription_n to_o the_o contrary_a hereof_o notwithstanding_o §_o 42_o again_o we_o find_v in_o the_o same_o act_n six_o prelate_n and_o six_o other_o such_o as_o the_o king_n shall_v nominate_v delegated_a by_o the_o same_o authority_n to_o make_v a_o new_a form_n of_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o this_o devise_v by_o they_o and_o set_v forth_o under_o the_o great_a seal_n to_o be_v use_v and_o none_o other_o the_o word_n be_v these_o forasmuch_o as_o that_o concord_n and_o unity_n may_v be_v have_v within_o the_o king_n majesty_n dominion_n some_o it_o seem_v then_o devise_v to_o themselves_o new_a form_n of_o consecration_n and_o ordination_n cut_v of_o dislike_n of_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o old_a it_o be_v requisite_a to_o have_v one_o uniform_a manner_n for_o make_v and_o consecrate_v of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v it_o therefore_o enact_v that_o such_o form_n as_o by_o six_o prelate_n and_o six_o other_o man_n of_o this_o realm_n learned_a in_o god_n law_n by_o the_o king_n to_o be_v appoint_v or_o by_o the_o most_o number_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v devise_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o set_v forth_o under_o the_o great_a seal_n shall_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o present_a act_n be_v lawful_o use_v and_o none_o other_o any_o law_n statute_n or_o prescription_n to_o the_o contrary_a hereof_o notwithstanding_o here_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n assume_v power_n to_o abrogate_v the_o former_a common_a ritual_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o their_o delegate_n to_o constitute_v and_o by_o their_o sole_a act_n to_o authorise_v new_a without_o any_o consent_n and_o ratification_n give_v thereto_o by_o any_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n and_o in_o this_o new_a book_n of_o ordination_n be_v insert_v this_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o renunciation_n of_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v take_v by_o every_o one_o enter_v into_o holy_a order_n i_o from_o henceforth_o shall_v utter_o renounce_v and_o forsake_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o authority_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o i_o shall_v never_o consent_v nor_o
pro_fw-la suâ_fw-la pielate_fw-la efficere_fw-la dignentur_fw-la ut_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la nostram_fw-la &_o libertatem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la pertinent_a sine_fw-la quibus_fw-la debitum_fw-la nostri_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la officii_fw-la &_o curae_fw-la animarum_fw-la nobis_fw-la commissae_fw-la exercere_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la nobis_fw-la superiorum_fw-la temporum_fw-la injuriâ_fw-la ablata_fw-la restituantur_fw-la &_o ea_fw-la nobis_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la illaesa_fw-la &_o salva_fw-la permaneant_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la leges_fw-la quae_fw-la hanc_fw-la nostram_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la &_o libertatem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la tollunt_fw-la seu_fw-la quovis_fw-la modo_fw-la impediunt_fw-la abrogentur_fw-la ad_fw-la honorem_fw-la dei_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o rights_n how_o welcome_a they_o be_v to_o they_o when_o now_o regain_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n we_o may_v guess_v from_o their_o former_a complaint_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n edward_n day_n where_o we_o see_v how_o much_o they_o grieve_v when_o they_o see_v they_o lose_v sander_n 2._o l._n p._n 244._o add_v also_o that_o at_o this_o time_n singuli_fw-la episcopi_fw-la uno_fw-la tantum_fw-la landaffensi_fw-la excepto_fw-la peculiariter_fw-la petierunt_fw-la à_fw-la sede_fw-la apostolicâ_fw-la veniam_fw-la prioris_fw-la gravissimae_fw-la culpae_fw-la 47._o see_v before_o §._o 47._o &_o confirmationem_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la cujusque_fw-la episcopatu_fw-la last_o in_o the_o same_o statute_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o ordinary_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o same_o state_n for_o process_n of_o suit_n punishment_n of_o error_n and_o execution_n of_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n with_o knowledge_n of_o cause_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o and_o as_o large_a in_o these_o point_n as_o the_o say_a jurisdiction_n be_v in_o the_o twenty_o year_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o §_o 51_o after_o these_o statute_n see_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o synod_n hold_v present_o after_o the_o coronation_n of_o queen_n mary_n condemn_v a●d_v the_o church_n doctrine_n under_o king_n edward_n condemn_v before_o the_o introduction_n of_o any_o new_a bishop_n save_v only_o some_o of_o those_o that_o be_v eject_v in_o king_n edward_n reign_n in_o which_o synod_n the_o bishop_n of_o london_n preside_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v be_v about_o a_o month_n before_o by_o the_o council_n commit_v to_o the_o tower_n for_o treason_n for_o which_o he_o be_v some_o two_o month_n after_o condemn_v but_o afterward_o pardon_v by_o the_o queen_n in_o this_o synod_n fox_n say_v p._n 1282._o that_o the_o whole_a house_n of_o convocation_n 1698._o fox_n p._n 1698._o except_o six_o person_n do_v immediate_o assent_v and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o natural_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o transubstantiation_n and_o to_o the_o renounce_n of_o the_o catechism_n put_v forth_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n of_o king_n edward_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o of_o the_o new_a book_n of_o common-prayer_n these_o thing_n be_v propose_v to_o they_o by_o the_o prolocutor_n at_o which_o time_n say_v he_o mr._n philpot_n archdeacon_n of_o winchester_n be_v as_o it_o be_v astonish_v at_o the_o multitude_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n as_o there_o be_v on_o purpose_n gather_v together_o to_o maintain_v old_a tradition_n rather_o than_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n after_o this_o synod_n see_v in_o fox_n p._n 1294._o 1._o §._o 52._o n_z 1._o the_o eighteen_o article_n send_v by_o the_o queen_n to_o the_o bishop_n but_o these_o article_n such_o as_o only_o enjoin_v they_o the_o observance_n of_o former_a church_n constitution_n from_o which_o the_o late_a innovation_n have_v disobedient_o deviate_v command_v they_o to_o see_v to_o the_o observance_n in_o their_o diocese_n of_o the_o church_n canon_n use_v in_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o secure_v they_o herein_o from_o the_o incur_v any_o danger_n from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n see_v the_o 1._o act._n the_o second_o of_o which_o article_n require_v they_o to_o omit_v in_o their_o writ_n regiâ_fw-la authoritate_fw-la fulcitus_fw-la the_o three_o not_o to_o require_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o queen_n supremacy_n in_o their_o admission_n of_o any_o into_o church_n preferment_n the_o four_o exclude_v sacramentary_n from_o all_o ecclesiastical_a function_n the_o synod_n hold_v in_o october_n before_o have_v declare_v against_o they_o the_o seven_o exclude_v according_a to_o the_o former_a church_n canon_n all_o marry_a person_n from_o ecclesiastical_a promotion_n the_o nine_o appoint_v the_o divorce_n of_o marry_a monk_n and_o other_o religious_a person_n who_o have_v former_o take_v the_o perpetual_a vow_n of_o continency_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v to_o renew_v some_o or_o other_o former_a order_n of_o the_o church_n last_o see_v the_o retractation_n make_v by_o the_o clergy_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n confess_v by_o mason_n de_fw-fr minist_n 2._o §._o 52._o n._n 2._o 3._o l._n 4._o c._n regnante_fw-la mariâ_fw-la alia_fw-la episcopis_fw-la mens_fw-la alius_fw-la animus_n fuit_fw-la i_o e._n concern_v supremacy_n to_o which_o all_o that_o he_o answer_v be_v this_o eorum_fw-la subsecuta_fw-la inconstantia_fw-la confessionis_fw-la prioris_fw-la soliditatem_fw-la abolere_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la quamvis_fw-la sententias_fw-la revocarunt_fw-la suis_fw-la tamen_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la argumentis_fw-la non_fw-la satisfecerunt_fw-la but_o however_o that_o he_o will_v not_o grant_v the_o king_n supremacy_n i_o mean_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o it_o be_v then_o maintain_v to_o have_v be_v confute_v by_o the_o bishop_n reason_v yet_o he_o grant_v it_o to_o have_v be_v revoke_v so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v by_o their_o authority_n §_o 53_o the_o only_a thing_n which_o can_v here_o be_v question_v be_v whether_o this_o clergy_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n clergy_n that_o queen_n mary_n clergy_n be_v a_o lawful_a clergy_n who_o in_o their_o follow_a synod_n abrogate_a the_o act_n and_o concession_n of_o the_o clergy_n former_a synod_n in_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o edward_n the_o sixth_n day_n be_v a_o lawful_a clergy_n which_o if_o they_o be_v now_o note_v that_o they_o will_v also_o be_v so_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n day_n when_o also_o they_o oppose_v her_o reformation_n now_o it_o be_v question_v whether_o they_o be_v a_o lawful_a clergy_n α_n α_n α_n because_o many_o of_o king_n edward_n bishop_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o queen_n reign_n eject_v β_n β_n β_n and_o some_o also_o burn_v for_o heretic_n and_o other_o put_v into_o their_o place_n γ_n γ_n γ_n whilst_o some_o of_o they_o be_v live_v and_o so_o those_o see_v not_o vacant_a δ_n δ_n and_o δ_n that_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a who_o for_o the_o three_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n mary_n be_v cranmer_n without_o which_o metropolitan_n consent_n the_o ordination_n of_o any_o bishop_n in_o his_o province_n be_v unlawful_a see_v can._n nicen._n 4._o can._n apostol_n 35._o now_o these_o bishop_n be_v number_v by_o fox_n to_o have_v be_v then_o eject_v 1289._o pag._n 1289._o cranmer_n from_o canterbury_n holgate_n from_o york_n ridley_n from_o london_n poynet_z from_z winchester_z hooper_n from_o worcester_n he_o may_v have_v say_v from_o gloucester_n too_o for_o hooper_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_n time_n hold_v both_o these_o see_v together_o in_o commendam_fw-la and_o for_o worcester_n 1555._o see_v godw._n annal._n an._n dom._n 1555._o latimer_n then_o live_a have_v be_v bishop_n thereof_o in_o king_n henry_n be_v day_n out_o of_o which_o for_o nonconformity_n to_o the_o six_o article_n he_o be_v eject_v or_o for_o fear_n resign_v it_o and_o be_v imprison_v in_o the_o tower_n till_o king_n edward_n be_v time_n yet_o for_o what_o reason_n i_o know_v not_o can_v never_o then_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o bishopric_n barlow_n from_o bath_n harley_n from_o hereford_n taylor_n from_o lincoln_n but_o this_o be_v by_o death_n not_o by_o the_o queen_n as_o appear_v in_o fox_n p._n 1282._o ferrars_n from_o st._n david_n coverdale_n from_o excester_n scory_n from_o chichester_n beside_o these_o i_o find_v two_o more_o mention_v by_o mason_n de_fw-fr minist_n p._n 248._o bush_n from_o bristol_n and_o bird_n from_o chester_n of_o which_o bishop_n mr._n fox_n say_v p._n 1280_o five_o be_v put_v out_o that_o the_o former_a possessor_n of_o those_o bishopric_n may_v be_v restore_v bonner_n to_o london_n gardiner_n to_o winchester_n day_n to_o chichester_n heath_n to_o worcester_n but_o heath_n be_v afterward_o translate_v to_o york_n in_o holgate_n room_n and_o pate_n to_o worcester_n in_o hoopers_n room_n vesy_v to_o excester_n beside_o which_o tonstal_n be_v restore_v to_o durham_n a_o bishopric_n which_o after_o tonstal_n imprisonment_n be_v first_o keep_v void_a in_o king_n edward_n day_n and_o at_o last_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n dissolve_v to_o increase_v the_o king_n revenue_n §_o 54_o now_o in_o vindication_n of_o the_o
just_a authority_n of_o queen_n mary_n clergy_n α_n reply_v to_o α_n notwithstanding_o what_o have_v be_v object_v you_o must_v first_o 1._o take_v notice_n that_o the_o ejection_n of_o bishop_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n be_v not_o the_o first_o but_o second_o ejection_n the_o first_o be_v make_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n when_o gardiner_n bonner_n tonstal_n day_n heath_n vesy_n eject_v that_o the_o bishop_n in_o k_o edward_n day_n be_v not_o lawful_o eject_v and_o probable_o some_o other_o bishop_n be_v remove_v from_o their_o see_v for_o i_o find_v not_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o those_o time_n accurate_o write_v by_o any_o nor_o mr._n fox_n to_o use_v the_o same_o diligence_n in_o number_v the_o change_n of_o clergy_n under_o king_n edward_n as_o he_o do_v that_o under_o queen_n mary_n yet_o something_o may_v be_v conjecture_v from_o those_o general_a word_n of_o he_o p._n 1180_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o bishop_n be_v change_v and_o the_o dumb_a prelate_n compel_v to_o give_v place_n to_o other_o that_o will_v preach_v second_o that_o if_o the_o ejection_n of_o bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n be_v not_o lawful_a so_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n as_o be_v then_o eject_v be_v by_z queen_n marry_o just_o restore_v and_o those_o who_o be_v introduce_v into_o their_o place_n just_o exclude_v three_o that_o to_o prove_v the_o ejection_n of_o those_o bishop_n under_o king_n edward_n lawful_a it_o must_v be_v do_v both_o by_o a_o lawful_a authority_n and_o for_o a_o lawful_a cause_n four_o but_o that_o in_o both_o these_o respect_n their_o ejection_n if_o the_o principle_n former_o lay_v in_o this_o discourse_n stand_v good_a appear_v not_o just_a §_o 55_o for_o 1._o first_o these_o bishop_n be_v question_v about_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a judge_n 1._o neither_o for_o the_o judge_n their_o judge_n be_v the_o king_n privy_a council_n or_o his_o commissioner_n part_n clergy_n part_n laity_n as_o the_o king_n please_v to_o nominate_v they_o contrary_a to_o three_o thesis_n among_o who_o though_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v one_o yet_o he_o be_v so_o not_o for_o his_o canonical_a superiority_n in_o the_o church_n but_o from_o the_o authority_n he_o joint_o with_o the_o rest_n receive_v from_o the_o king_n when_o the_o former_a statute_n concern_v the_o trial_n of_o heretic_n by_o the_o clergy_n 1202._o see_v fox_n p._n 1237_o and_o p_o 1202._o have_v be_v first_o abrogate_a see_v before_o §_o 39_o whereas_o the_o clergy_n only_o be_v the_o lawful_a judge_n of_o these_o matter_n namely_o to_o declare_v what_o be_v do_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o depose_v from_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o office_n the_o person_n find_v faulty_a therein_o see_v thesis_n three_o §_o 56_o second_o the_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a urge_v against_o they_o for_o which_o they_o be_v remove_v from_o their_o bishopric_n be_v these_o cause_n 2._o nor_o for_o the_o cause_n their_o non-acknowledgment_n of_o such_o a_o large_a extend_a power_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n as_o he_o then_o claim_v and_o exercise_v in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n their_o nonconformity_n to_o the_o king_n injunction_n confirm_v if_o you_o will_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o national_a synod_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o among_o these_o especial_o their_o not_z relinquish_a the_o usage_n of_o the_o former_a church_n liturgy_n and_o form_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o particular_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o have_v be_v a_o service_n approve_v by_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n for_o near_a a_o 1000_o year_n in_o which_o be_v now_o say_v to_o be_v many_o error_n 39_o see_v church_n g●v_n 4._o 〈◊〉_d §._o 39_o for_o which_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_o use_v their_o not_o use_v and_o conform_v to_o the_o new_a form_n of_o common-prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o new_a form_n of_o consecration_n and_o ordination_n of_o priest_n and_o many_o other_o clear_a innovation_n against_o the_o former_a not_o only_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n or_o external_n rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o it_o be_v affirm_v in_o one_o of_o the_o question_n dispute_v on_o in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n that_o every_o particular_a church_n have_v authority_n to_o take_v away_o and_o change_v but_o also_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n establish_v by_o synod_n superior_a to_o that_o of_o this_o nation_n as_o have_v be_v show_v in_o the_o four_o part_n of_o church_n govern._n a_o catalogue_n of_o which_o doctrine_n and_o canon_n i_o have_v set_v down_o before_o §_o 45_o have_v take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o three_o copy_n of_o article_n propose_v to_o the_o then_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n 1235._o see_v fox_n p._n 1234_o 1235._o to_o be_v subscribe_v now_o such_o canon_n whether_o concern_v matter_n of_o doctrine_n or_o of_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n can_v be_v lawful_o abrogate_a neither_o by_o the_o king_n see_v thesis_n 1_o 2.7_o 8_o nor_o by_o the_o national_a synod_n of_o this_o church_n see_v thesis_n 4.8_o and_o therefore_o the_o ejection_n of_o those_o bishop_n in_o edward_n the_o sixth_n day_n for_o not_o obey_v the_o king_n i_o add_v or_o the_o national_a synod_n have_v there_o be_v any_o such_o before_o their_o ejection_n in_o break_v such_o canon_n be_v unjust_a and_o therefore_o they_o just_o by_o queen_n mary_n restore_v and_o the_o other_o that_o be_v find_v in_o their_o place_n just_o dispossess_v five_o as_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o king_n edward_n bishop_n who_o beside_o those_o bishop_n that_o possess_v these_o non-vacant_a see_v be_v eject_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n §_o 57_o eject_v 5._o that_o the_o bishop_n deprive_v in_o qu._n mary_n day_n be_v lawful_o eject_v their_o ejection_n contrary_a to_o the_o other_o will_v be_v justifiable_a if_o do_v for_o a_o lawful_a cause_n and_o by_o a_o lawful_a judge_n 1._o first_o then_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o ejection_n be_v these_o chief_o §_o 58_o first_o for_o their_o be_v marry_v which_o many_o if_o not_o all_o the_o eject_v be_v cranmer_z cause_n 1._o b●th_v as_o to_o the_o cause_n holgate_n the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n coverdale_n scory_n barlow_n hooper_n farrar_n harley_n bird_n bush_n and_o some_o of_o they_o after_o have_v take_v monastic_a vow_n as_o holgate_n coverdale_n barlow_n as_o appear_v in_o fox_n and_o godwin_n contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n both_o western_a and_o eastern_a as_o to_o those_o that_o marry_v after_o have_v receive_v holy_a order_n both_o modern_a and_o ancient_a even_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o be_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o discourse_n of_o celibacy_n §_o 18_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o provincial_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n see_v fox_n p._n 1051_o and_o 177_o grant_v celibacy_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o have_v be_v establish_v here_o for_o a_o law_n by_o a_o national_a synod_n in_o the_o time_n of_o anselme_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n about_o an._n dom._n 1080_o the_o penalty_n of_o transgress_v which_o canon_n be_v deposition_n from_o their_o office_n see_v conc._n constant_n in_o trullo_n less_o strict_a in_o this_o matter_n than_o the_o western_a church_n can._n 6_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la post_fw-la svi_fw-la ordinationem_fw-la conjugium_fw-la contrahere_fw-la ausus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la deponatur_fw-la see_v the_o same_o in_o council_n neocaesar_n before_o that_o of_o nice_n can._n 1._o conc_fw-fr elibert_n 33._o c._n african_n can._n 37._o and_o see_v the_o same_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o anselme_n that_o all_o priest_n that_o keep_v woman_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o their_o church_n and_o all_o ecclesiastical_a benefice_n §_o 59_o second_o for_o their_o not_o acknowledge_v any_o supremacy_n at_o all_o of_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n 2_o 2_o more_o than_o of_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n over_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n contrary_a to_o the_o former_a canon_n of_o many_o lawful_a superior_a council_n as_o be_v show_v in_o church_n gou._n 1._o part._n §_o 53._o and_o also_o contrary_a to_o the_o former_a provincial_a one_o of_o the_o english_a church_n and_o for_o their_o place_v such_o a_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n in_o the_o prince_n as_o to_o use_v all_o jurisdiction_n to_o reform_v heresy_n constitute_v or_o reverse_v ecclesiastical_a law_n in_o the_o manner_n before_o express_v which_o supremacy_n in_o the_o church_n since_o some_o body_n in_o each_o prince_n dominion_n where_o christian_n be_v ever_o have_v here_o on_o earth_n under_o christ_n i_o say_v ever_o not_o only_o after_o that_o prince_n become_v christian_a but_o before_o archbishop_n cranmer_n rather_o than_o that_o he_o will_v acknowledge_v it_o at_o any_o time_n to_o have_v lie_v in_o the_o church_n say_v that_o before_o the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n time_n it_o reside_v in_o the_o heathen_a prince_n
18._o edward_n the._n p._n 184._o l._n 5._o §_o 194._o p._n 210._o l._n 8._o §_o 204._o p._n 211._o l._n 10._o §_o 197._o p._n 215._o l._n 37._o that_o tho_o no._n p._n 226._o l._n 22._o their_o word_n animadversion_n on_o the_o eight_o thesis_n lay_v down_o and_o the_o inference_n deduce_v from_o they_o in_o a_o discourse_n entitle_v church-government_n part_n v._n late_o print_v at_o oxford_n they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o because_o they_o be_v not_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v no_o doubt_n have_v continue_v with_o we_o but_o they_o go_v out_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o us._n 1_o joh._n 2.19_o oxford_z print_v at_o the_o theater_n anno_fw-la 1687._o imprimatur_fw-la jo._n venn_n vicecan_a oxon._n jun._n 2._o 1687._o to_o the_o university_n reader_n these_o paper_n neither_o have_v nor_o need_v any_o other_o recommendation_n then_o that_o of_o the_o cause_n which_o they_o maintain_v they_o be_v extort_a by_o the_o importunity_n of_o those_o adversary_n who_o have_v endeavour_v to_o wound_v we_o in_o all_o our_o near_a concern_v the_o honour_n of_o our_o university_n the_o authority_n of_o our_o church_n and_o the_o right_n of_o our_o sovereign_n the_o laborious_a author_n of_o the_o discourse_n spare_v no_o pain_n to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o design_v publisher_n have_v with_o no_o inconsiderable_a expense_n endeavour_v a_o far_a advantage_n from_o they_o by_o cast_v a_o reproach_n upon_o these_o seminary_n of_o our_o education_n but_o it_o be_v just_o hope_v that_o their_o design_n against_o the_o university_n will_v prove_v as_o successless_a as_o their_o attempt_n on_o the_o church_n of_o which_o we_o know_v that_o though_o the_o rains_n descend_v the_o flood_n come_v and_o the_o wind_n blow_v yet_o it_o can_v fall_v for_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n the_o hope_n of_o our_o enemy_n abroad_o have_v be_v entertain_v and_o the_o solicitude_n of_o our_o friend_n awaken_v by_o the_o news_n of_o our_o oxford_n convert_v daily_o flock_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o we_o hope_v all_o man_n be_v by_o this_o time_n convince_v that_o they_o deserve_v as_o little_a consideration_n for_o their_o number_n as_o they_o do_v regard_n for_o their_o accomplishment_n no_o one_o need_n to_o be_v alarm_v at_o the_o desertion_n of_o six_o or_o seven_o member_n who_o shall_v consider_v their_o dependence_n on_o one_o who_o by_o the_o magazine_n which_o he_o have_v store_v up_o against_o we_o show_v that_o he_o have_v not_o now_o first_o change_v his_o complexion_n but_o only_o let_v fall_v the_o vizour_n nor_o ought_v we_o more_o to_o regard_v the_o insinuation_n of_o those_o who_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o secret_a promise_n of_o such_o as_o have_v not_o open_o profess_v as_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n but_o the_o confidence_n of_o the_o reporters_n but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v god_n cover_v we_o with_o his_o feather_n and_o under_o his_o wing_n will_v we_o trust_v we_o will_v neither_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o arrow_n that_o fly_v by_o day_n nor_o for_o the_o pestilence_n that_o walk_v in_o darkness_n but_o we_o lest_o of_o all_o fear_n any_o danger_n from_o this_o present_a attempt_n of_o our_o author_n since_o the_o regal_a power_n seem_v engage_v with_o our_o church_n in_o one_o common_a defence_n for_o she_o be_v no_o far_o concern_v in_o this_o present_a controversy_n then_o as_o she_o be_v accuse_v to_o have_v be_v too_o great_a a_o friend_n to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o certain_o that_o doctrine_n which_o invade_v the_o just_a right_n of_o the_o prince_n can_v hope_v but_o for_o few_o proselyte_n among_o those_o who_o have_v constant_o defend_v they_o in_o their_o write_n assert_v they_o in_o their_o decree_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n vindicate_v they_o with_o their_o sword_n for_o we_o do_v not_o lie_v open_a to_o the_o imputation_n of_o a_o condition_a and_o distinguish_a loyalty_n who_o have_v show_v our_o readiness_n to_o imitate_v the_o glorious_a example_n of_o our_o father_n and_o be_v prepare_v have_v not_o god_n good_a providence_n prevent_v our_o service_n to_o have_v transcribe_v that_o copy_n late_o at_o sedgmore_n which_o they_o set_v we_o former_o at_o edge-hill_n and_o in_o truth_n our_o steady_a fidelity_n to_o the_o prince_n be_v so_o unquestionable_a that_o our_o enemy_n have_v be_v please_v to_o ridicule_n what_o they_o can_v not_o deny_v and_o have_v make_v passive_a obedience_n bear_v a_o part_n in_o our_o charactery_n when_o the_o muse_n have_v be_v incline_v to_o satyr_n as_o for_o our_o author_n and_o his_o thesis_n there_o be_v nothing_o here_o advance_v which_o be_v not_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n full_o answer_v by_o protestant_a writer_n and_o have_v he_o write_v in_o henry_n the_o 8th_n reign_n he_o may_v have_v receive_v a_o reply_n from_o a_o roman_a catholic_a convocation_n so_o vain_a be_v it_o to_o urge_v we_o now_o with_o the_o stale_a pretence_n of_o a_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n which_o our_o ancestor_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n eject_v with_o so_o universal_a a_o consent_n and_o which_o our_o father_n of_o the_o reformation_n resist_v even_o unto_o death_n i_o mean_v those_o glorious_a prelate_n who_o here_o die_v seal_n d_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o religion_n with_o their_o blood_n and_o leave_v it_o as_o a_o legacy_n to_o we_o their_o child_n by_o we_o to_o be_v convey_v to_o the_o generation_n yet_o to_o come_v animadversion_n on_o the_o eight_o thesis_n etc._n etc._n as_o that_o person_n who_o will_v prove_v himself_o a_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v need_n of_o more_o sincerity_n than_o this_o editor_n show_v whilst_o he_o profess_v to_o be_v of_o her_o communion_n so_o one_o who_o have_v the_o ambition_n of_o appear_v a_o potent_a enemy_n against_o she_o have_v need_n of_o great_a strength_n than_o he_o have_v either_o produce_v of_o his_o own_o or_o borrow_a from_o other_o since_o he_o have_v be_v her_o declare_a adversary_n have_v he_o continue_v still_o to_o dissemble_v his_o faith_n and_o affect_v a_o aequilibrium_fw-la betwixt_o both_o church_n his_o writing_n will_v have_v be_v more_o suitable_a to_o such_o a_o character_n where_o the_o attentive_a reader_n will_v find_v the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o weak_o attacq_v and_o that_o of_o rome_n as_o faint_o vindicate_v but_o since_o some_o motive_n have_v prevail_v with_o he_o to_o assume_v the_o name_n of_o another_o church_n as_o that_o which_o he_o have_v leave_v have_v no_o great_a cause_n to_o lament_v the_o loss_n of_o such_o a_o member_n so_o that_o which_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v flee_v to_o will_v have_v little_a reason_n to_o boast_v that_o she_o have_v gain_v a_o proselyte_n for_o how_o plausible_o soever_o he_o may_v discourse_v of_o church-autority_n he_o abound_v in_o too_o great_a a_o plerophory_n of_o his_o own_o sense_n to_o submit_v himself_o either_o to_o a_o convocation_n at_o home_n or_o council_n abroad_o and_o although_o he_o will_v appear_v a_o enemy_n to_o luther_n he_o seem_v at_o this_o very_a time_n to_o be_v draw_v up_o a_o novel_a scheme_n of_o doctrine_n and_o model_v to_o himself_o a_o new_a church_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o one_o of_o his_o treatise_n he_o have_v desert_v the_o ancient_a plea_n of_o transubstantiation_n upon_o which_o the_o tridentine_a father_n found_v their_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n and_o from_o which_o all_o the_o great_a champion_n of_o that_o church_n have_v constant_o deduce_v it_o hence_o his_o modify_v the_o council_n sacramentum_fw-la into_o res_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la his_o prescind_n from_o the_o symbol_n his_o certain_a inferior_a cult_a only_a due_a to_o they_o his_o strip_v they_o even_o of_o the_o schoolmen_n latricall_a qualify_v secondary_a improper_a accidental_a coadoration_n and_o such_o other_o his_o abstractive_a notion_n of_o that_o worship_n as_o do_v indeed_o befit_v a_o nominal_a philosopher_n but_o have_v no_o agreement_n with_o the_o avow_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o discourse_n we_o be_v now_o upon_o we_o read_v nothing_o of_o the_o dominus_fw-la deus_fw-la papa_n of_o the_o canonist_n nothing_o of_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o holy_a apostolic_a and_o infallible_a see_v which_o their_o former_a writer_n have_v endeavour_v to_o establish_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la nothing_o of_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n governor_n and_o head_n of_o christ_n church_n the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o other_o title_n which_o even_o our_o representer_n of_o late_a who_o business_n it_o have_v be_v to_o mollify_v have_v furnish_v we_o with_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o of_o the_o modest_a bishop_n of_o meaux_n primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n chair_n and_o common_a centre_n
then_o a_o church_n under_o persecution_n until_o moses_n be_v raise_v up_o by_o god_n a_o lawful_a magistrate_n over_o they_o the_o case_n be_v alike_o for_o all_o the_o world_n no_o magistrate_n do_v assemble_v they_o in_o egypt_n and_o good_a reason_n why_o they_o have_v none_o to_o do_v it_o but_o this_o be_v no_o bar_n but_o when_o moses_n arise_v authorise_a by_o god_n &_o have_v the_o trumpet_n by_o god_n deliver_v to_o he_o he_o may_v take_v they_o keep_v they_o use_v they_o for_o that_o end_n for_z which_o god_n give_v they_o to_o assemble_v the_o congregation_n shall_v moses_n have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v then_o pharaoh_n or_o constantine_n then_o nero_n see_v also_o 52._o also_o field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 5._o c._n 52._o dr_n field_n his_o three_o thesis_n be_v that_o the_o secular_a prince_n can_v 77._o can_v soave_fw-it hist_n of_o conc._n tr._n pag._n 77._o depose_v or_o eject_v from_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o office_n in_o his_o dominion_n any_o of_o the_o clergy_n nor_o introduce_v other_o into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o eject_v but_o the_o quaestion_a here_o be_v not_o whether_o the_o prince_n can_v eject_v any_o of_o the_o clergy_n from_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o office_n but_o whether_o he_o can_v depose_v any_o for_o not_o exercise_v it_o while_o the_o clergy_n faithful_o discharge_v their_o office_n the_o prince_n ought_v to_o protect_v they_o and_o if_o for_o this_o they_o suffer_v no_o doubt_n but_o they_o be_v martyr_n but_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o may_v abuse_v their_o power_n and_o then_o it_o be_v to_o be_v inquire_v whether_o civil_a law_n may_v not_o inhibit_v they_o the_o use_v of_o it_o this_o author_n hold_v the_o negative_a and_o tell_v we_o one_a they_o can_v eject_v they_o at_o pleasure_n without_o give_v any_o cause_n thereof_o but_o he_o do_v not_o pretend_v that_o the_o reform_a prince_n ever_o eject_v any_o without_o a_o cause_n give_v and_o therefore_o he_o add_v 2_o neither_o may_v prince_n depose_v they_o for_o any_o cause_n which_o concern_v thing_n spiritual_a but_o with_o this_o limitation_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n i_o can_v wish_v he_o have_v here_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o thing_n spiritual_a for_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o person_n spiritual_a be_v of_o great_a extent_n d_o pope_n paul_n the_o 3d_o tell_v the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n that_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o doctor_n that_o priest_n concubine_n be_v of_o ecclsiastical_a jurisdiction_n but_o he_o give_v we_o his_o reason_n for_o his_o assertion_n because_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o judge_n to_o be_v a_o competent_a one_o have_v as_o well_o potestatem_fw-la in_o causam_fw-la as_o in_o personam_fw-la and_o the_o prince_n as_o have_v be_v mention_v in_o the_o one_a thesis_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o judge_v such_o cause_n pure_o spiritual_a now_o the_o power_n deny_v to_o the_o prince_n in_o the_o one_a thesis_n be_v to_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n but_o may_v not_o the_o prince_n judge_n whether_o a_o ecclesiastic_a deserve_v deprivation_n without_o determine_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n may_v not_o he_o judge_v according_a to_o what_o have_v be_v already_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n or_o may_v not_o he_o appoint_v such_o delegate_n as_o can_v determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n or_o be_v all_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o a_o clergyman_n may_v be_v deprive_v mere_o spiritual_a by_o virtue_n of_o this_o thesis_n he_o prove_v the_o ejection_n of_o the_o western_a patriarch_n unlawful_a 37._o pag._n 37._o now_o be_v not_o this_o matter_n of_o faith_n already_o determine_v by_o the_o clergy_n have_v they_o not_o unanimous_o decree_v that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o authority_n here_o than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n and_o can_v the_o king_n be_v say_v here_o to_o have_v act_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o yet_o that_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v apply_v to_o this_o thesis_n as_o for_o the_o ejection_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n be_v not_o that_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v for_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o regal_a supremacy_n 70._o pag._n 70._o but_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n which_o want_v no_o new_a determination_n for_o the_o church-autority_n have_v decide_v it_o in_o their_o synod_n in_o king_n henry_n reign_n but_o it_o be_v say_v the_o judge_n be_v not_o canonical_a as_o be_v the_o king_n commissioner_n part_n clergy_n part_n laity_n but_o neither_o be_v the_o cause_n pure_o canonical_a for_o deny_v the_o supremacy_n be_v not_o only_o a_o infringement_n of_o the_o canon_n but_o also_o a_o violation_n of_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o for_o the_o bishop_n bonner_n and_o gardiner_n they_o be_v accuse_v for_o not_o assert_v the_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o king_n in_o his_o nonage_n nor_o do_v they_o plead_v conscience_n for_o not_o do_v it_o but_o deny_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n 165._o fact_n burn._n he_o ref._n part_n 2._o l._n 1._o p._n 127._o 165._o the_o same_o objection_n be_v then_o make_v against_o their_o deprivation_n as_o be_v reassume_v by_o this_o author_n now_o and_o therefore_o it_o may_v suffice_v to_o return_v the_o same_o answer_n that_o the_o sentence_n be_v only_o of_o deprivation_n from_o their_o see_v it_o be_v not_o so_o entire_o of_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n but_o be_v of_o a_o mix_v nature_n so_o that_o layman_n may_v join_v in_o it_o &_o since_o they_o have_v take_v commission_n from_o the_o king_n for_o their_o bishopric_n by_o which_o they_o hold_v they_o only_o during_o the_o king_n pleasure_n they_o can_v not_o complain_v of_o their_o deprivation_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o king_n authority_n other_o who_o look_v far_o back_o remember_v that_o constantine_n the_o emp._n have_v appoint_v secular_a man_n to_o inquire_v into_o some_o thing_n object_v to_o bishop_n who_o be_v call_v cognitores_fw-la or_o trier_n and_o such_o have_v examine_v the_o business_n of_o coecilian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n even_o upon_o a_o appeal_n after_o it_o have_v be_v try_v by_o several_a synod_n and_o give_v judgement_n against_o donatus_n and_o his_o party_n the_o same_o constantine_n have_v also_o by_o his_o authority_n put_v eustathius_n out_o of_o antioch_n athanasius_n out_o of_o alexandria_n and_o paul_n out_o of_o constantinople_n and_o though_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n complain_v of_o their_o particular_n as_o do_v unjust_o at_o the_o false_a suggestion_n of_o the_o arrian_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n in_o such_o case_n 127._o ibid._n p._n 127._o but_o neither_o be_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n by_o this_o author_n allow_v to_o be_v a_o proper_a judge_n &_o that_o because_o he_o do_v not_o act_n by_o his_o canonical_a superiority_n in_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n he_o joint_o with_o the_o rest_n receive_v from_o the_o king_n as_o if_o he_o have_v ever_o the_o less_o the_o power_n of_o a_o metropolitan_a because_o he_o be_v also_o the_o king_n commissioner_n by_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v the_o decree_n of_o ecumenical_a council_n will_v be_v invalid_a because_o they_o be_v call_v to_o determine_v controversy_n by_o the_o command_n of_o emperor_n but_o how_o uncanonical_a soever_o king_n edward_n bishop_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v he_o do_v not_o except_v against_o queen_n mary_n bishop_n though_o they_o in_o deprive_v the_o reform_a act_v by_o commission_n from_o the_o queen_n as_o for_o the_o bishop_n eject_v in_o q._n elizabeth_n time_n it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v it_o be_v for_o a_o civil_a cause_n i._n e._n refuse_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n which_o why_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a in_o her_o father_n time_n and_o unlawful_a in_o she_o why_o it_o shall_v be_v contrive_v by_o roman_a catholics_n in_o that_o reign_n and_o scruple_v by_o the_o same_o roman_a catholics_n in_o this_o why_o it_o shall_v be_v inoffensive_a when_o express_v in_o large_a term_n and_o scandalous_a when_o mitigate_v whence_o on_o a_o sudden_a the_o refuser_n espy_v so_o much_o obliquity_n in_o that_o oath_n which_o they_o have_v all_o take_v before_o probable_o either_o as_o bishop_n or_o priest_n in_o the_o reign_v of_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o and_o edward_n the_o 6_o whence_o this_o change_n of_o thing_n proceed_v unless_o from_o secret_a intimation_n from_o rome_n or_o their_o own_o obstinacy_n will_v not_o easy_o be_v conjecture_v as_o for_o his_o note_n that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o other_o clergy_n may_v be_v say_v likewise_o of_o the_o patriarch_n for_o any_o authority_n which_o he_o stand_v possess_v of_o by_o such_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n as_o can_v just_o be_v pretend_v to_o do_v any_o wrong_n to_o the_o civil_a government_n he_o have_v be_v often_o tell_v by_o our_o author_n that_o patriarch_n be_v a_o humane_a institution_n that_o as_o they_o be_v erect_v so_o they_o
need_n to_o meddle_v with_o any_o other_o since_o we_o never_o do_v own_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o but_o what_o be_v so_o establish_v i_o need_v not_o speak_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o 25_o paragraph_n 25.26_o §._o 25.26_o because_o what_o be_v say_v there_o be_v unsay_v in_o the_o 26_o but_o our_o author_n have_v a_o supposal_n here_o which_o may_v deserve_v a_o remark_n he_o suppose_v that_o gardener_n retract_v his_o acknowledgement_n of_o a_o regal_a supremacy_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o by_o sad_a experience_n he_o see_v it_o much_o enlarge_v beyond_o those_o bound_n within_o which_o only_o they_o former_o have_v maintain_v it_o just_a §_o 46_o but_o elsewhere_o this_o same_o author_n will_v suppose_v that_o gardener_n be_v ensnare_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n by_o that_o sense_n of_o supremacy_n of_o which_o he_o have_v be_v a_o zealous_a abettor_n in_o king_n henry_n and_o this_o sense_n which_o gardiner_n have_v of_o king_n henry_n supremacy_n in_o another_o paragraph_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v gross_a and_o impure_a §_o 37_o and_o to_o have_v extend_v the_o king_n power_n even_o to_o the_o alteration_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n beyond_o which_o bound_n i_o will_v learn_v of_o this_o author_n how_o it_o can_v be_v enlarge_v in_o this_o methinks_v he_o be_v something_o autocatacritical_a if_o it_o can_v be_v worth_a our_o while_n to_o look_v back_o upon_o what_o have_v be_v perform_v in_o this_o chapter_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o nothing_o far_o have_v be_v advance_v then_o that_o the_o clergy_n give_v king_n henry_n the_o title_n of_o supreme_a promise_v to_o enact_v no_o new_a canon_n without_o the_o king_n assent_n and_o request_v that_o the_o old_a one_o may_v be_v reform_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o discourse_n be_v only_a flourish_n which_o our_o author_n make_v use_v of_o that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o great_a scope_n for_o his_o invention_n all_o that_o be_v matetial_a in_o 7_o leave_n may_v have_v be_v comprise_v in_o few_o word_n and_o this_o will_v have_v heighten_v our_o esteem_n of_o the_o author_n though_o it_o may_v have_v depress_v the_o price_n of_o the_o pamphlet_n a_o reply_n to_o his_o 3_o chapter_n §_o 26_o we_o be_v come_v now_o to_o our_o author_n second_o head_n the_o supremacy_n of_o king_n henry_n be_v still_o the_o topick_n i._n e._n he_o be_v still_o write_v against_o his_o forefather_n the_o roman-catholics_a the_o extent_n of_o this_o supremacy_n he_o take_v from_o act_n of_o parliament_n repeal_v and_o not_o repeal_v make_v no_o difference_n with_o he_o all_o the_o expression_n which_o seem_v to_o extend_v the_o supremacy_n be_v invidious_o rake_v together_o and_o those_o which_o limit_v it_o crafty_o suppress_v the_o statute_n be_v put_v upon_o the_o rack_n and_o because_o the_o text_n do_v not_o speak_v plain_a enough_o our_o author_n have_v add_v his_o gloss_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o clergy_n have_v give_v the_o king_n the_o title_n of_o supreme_a the_o parliament_n vest_v in_o he_o all_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o say_a dignity_n belong_v the_o parliament_n give_v the_o king_n no_o new_a jurisdiction_n but_o restore_v the_o old_a nor_o do_v they_o place_n in_o he_o any_o power_n but_o what_o be_v recognize_v by_o the_o clergy_n who_o certain_o do_v not_o delude_v the_o king_n with_o the_o compliment_n of_o a_o empty_a title_n the_o extent_n of_o this_o jurisdiction_n annex_v to_o the_o crown_n he_o will_v have_v we_o learn_v from_o the_o one_a of_o q._n elizabeth_n but_o it_o seem_v more_o proper_a to_o learn_v it_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o same_o statute_n of_o king_n henry_n his_o comment_n upon_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n here_o ascribe_v to_o the_o prince_n may_v have_v be_v spare_v if_o he_o have_v attend_v to_o a_o easy_a distinction_n frequent_o meet_v with_o in_o our_o writer_n they_o divide_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n into_o internal_a the_o inward_a government_n which_o be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n or_o external_n that_o which_o be_v practise_v in_o exterior_a court_n that_o proceed_v by_o spiritual_a censure_n this_o by_o force_n and_o corporal_a punishment_n that_o be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o clergy_n and_o incommunicable_a to_o the_o secular_a power_n this_o be_v original_o inherent_a in_o the_o civil_a supreme_a and_o from_o he_o derive_v to_o ecclesiastic_a governor_n ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n when_o say_v to_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o crown_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o latter_a sense_n this_o also_o answer_v what_o be_v here_o cite_v from_o the_o reformatio_fw-la legum_n though_o what_o be_v urge_v thence_o need_v no_o reply_n that_o book_n have_v never_o be_v ratify_v by_o any_o autoritative_a act_n of_o our_o church_n §_o 28_o in_o virtue_n of_o this_o jurisdiction_n translate_v to_o the_o king_n by_o another_o act_n of_o parliament_n 25._o hen._n 8.21_o c._n the_o supreme_a power_n of_o give_v all_o manner_n of_o licenses_fw-la dispensation_n faculty_n etc._n etc._n for_o all_o law_n and_o constitution_n mere_o ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o all_o cause_n not_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o take_v from_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o clergy_n too_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o that_o act_n by_o virtue_n of_o any_o new-jurisdiction_n translate_v to_o the_o king_n but_o by_o this_o power_n original_o inherent_a in_o the_o sovereign_n every_o government_n have_v a_o right_a to_o dispense_v with_o its_o own_o act_n and_o nothing_o far_o be_v challenge_v in_o that_o statute_n no_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n have_v ever_o the_o force_n of_o law_n in_o this_o kingdom_n but_o from_o the_o legislative_a power_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o the_o same_o power_n which_o give_v they_o life_n may_v dispense_v with_o they_o this_o the_o act_n say_v be_v evident_a not_o only_o from_o the_o wholesome_a act_n make_v in_o king_n henry_n reign_n but_o from_o those_o make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o noble_a progenitor_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o a_o power_n now_o first_o attribute_v to_o the_o prince_n but_o his_o ancient_a right_n for_o some_o year_n indeed_o usurp_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o now_o vindicate_v this_o be_v the_o true_a import_n of_o that_o statute_n which_o when_o it_o be_v fair_o represent_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n justify_v the_o power_n of_o grant_v licenses_fw-la be_v indeed_o take_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o it_o never_o right_o belong_v but_o not_o from_o the_o clergy_n it_o be_v express_o provide_v in_o the_o act_n that_o all_o licenses_fw-la be_v grant_v by_o the_o archbishop_n or_o 2_o spiritual_a person_n in_o case_n of_o the_o archbishop_n refusal_n the_o court_n of_o chancery_n be_v to_o judge_v whether_o such_o refusal_n be_v out_o of_o contumacy_n which_o power_n of_o the_o chancery_n if_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o our_o author_n 8_o thesis_n it_o ought_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v excuse_v since_o the_o 34._o the_o p._n 34._o animadverter_n have_v observe_v that_o that_o thesis_n be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o his_o notion_n of_o the_o parliament_n coordinacy_n with_o the_o king_n in_o the_o supremacy_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o learned_a in_o the_o law_n this_o act_n i_o be_o sure_a whence_o he_o infer_v it_o positive_o assert_n the_o king_n to_o be_v supreme_a §_o 29_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o supremacy_n translate_v to_o the_o king_n the_o necessity_n of_o the_o metropolitan_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o patriarch_n be_v take_v away_o the_o statute_n whence_o he_o collect_v this_o mention_n neither_o metropolitan_a nor_o patriarch_n it_o enact_v indeed_o that_o no_o person_n of_o this_o realm_n shall_v be_v present_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n otherwise_o call_v the_o pope_n to_o or_o for_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n of_o this_o realm_n but_o the_o arch-bishop_n of_o this_o realm_n be_v such_o metropolitan_o as_o owe_v no_o subjection_n to_o any_o patriarch_n and_o therefore_o have_v no_o necessity_n of_o be_v confirm_v by_o he_o nor_o do_v the_o statute_n take_v away_o any_o such_o necessity_n for_o it_o suppose_v none_o the_o king_n presentation_n to_o a_o bishopric_n against_o which_o he_o be_v so_o warm_a be_v no_o new_a usurpation_n but_o a_o ancient_a right_n have_v he_o live_v some_o century_n before_o the_o reformation_n he_o will_v have_v have_v this_o grievance_n to_o complain_v of_o the_o 2_o next_o paragraph_n he_o tell_v we_o he_o have_v set_v down_o before_o 31._o §._o 30._o and_o 31._o and_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v repeat_v but_o for_o the_o reader_n be_v mortification_n the_o 32_o paragraph_n be_v that_o which_o have_v get_v the_o particle_n 65._o particle_n see_v the_o animadv_n p._n 65._o as_o in_o it_o the_o say_a archbishop_n when_o no_o archbishop_n have_v be_v mention_v before_o be_v another_o of_o our_o author_n idiom_n in_o the_o same_o period_n
391._o tonstal_n bur._n v._o 2._o app._n p._n 390._o 391._o be_v deprive_v for_o misprision_n of_o treason_n he_o be_v a_o firm_a friend_n of_o the_o protector_n and_o so_o well_o satisfy_v with_o the_o first_o change_n which_o be_v make_v that_o he_o be_v complain_v of_o by_o gardiner_n as_o well_o as_o cranmer_n in_o a_o letter_n which_o he_o write_v to_o the_o protector_n ibid._n protector_n ibid._n bonner_n and_o gardiner_n be_v deprive_v for_o not_o preach_v up_o the_o king_n authority_n to_o be_v the_o same_o under_o age_n as_o after_o which_o be_v a_o point_n pure_o secular_a and_o relate_v to_o the_o constitution_n of_o this_o government_n 70._o government_n bur._n hist_o v._o 2._o p._n 70._o gardiner_n in_o the_o sermon_n for_o a_o omission_n in_o which_o he_o be_v deprive_v express_v himself_o very_o full_o concern_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n as_o just_o abolish_v and_o the_o suppression_n of_o monastery_n and_o chantry_n approve_v of_o the_o king_n proceed_n thought_n image_n may_v have_v be_v well_o use_v but_o yet_o may_v be_v take_v away_o approve_v of_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n of_o the_o abolition_n of_o mass_n and_o new_a order_n of_o communion_n assert_v indeed_o the_o corporal_a presence_n but_o that_o be_v not_o yet_o declare_v against_o 121._o against_o bur._n v._o 2._o p._n 121._o bonner_n comply_v so_o easy_o with_o every_o order_n of_o council_n that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o find_v any_o complaint_n against_o he_o 390._o he_o bur._n v._o 2._o app._n p._n 390._o heath_n and_o day_n comply_v with_o all_o the_o change_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o 4_o year_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n and_o both_o preach_v and_o write_v for_o they_o they_o be_v deprive_v by_o lay-delegate_n in_o the_o 5_o year_n of_o king_n edward_n and_o my_o author_n hence_o guess_v it_o be_v for_o some_o offence_n against_o the_o state_n after_o this_o account_n i_o need_v not_o be_v solicitous_a to_o examine_v whether_o the_o cause_n assign_v by_o our_o author_n be_v just_a cause_n of_o deprivation_n or_o not_o have_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o the_o cause_n as_o for_o the_o ejection_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o king_n edward_n bishop_n by_o q._n mary_n this_o he_o say_v will_v be_v justifiable_a if_o do_v one_a for_o a_o lawful_a cause_n 2_o by_o a_o lawful_a judge_n which_o therefore_o he_o assign_v the_o cause_n here_o he_o suppose_v to_o be_v all_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n as_o distinct_a to_o popery_n viz._n marriage_n of_o clergy_n deny_v the_o papal_a and_o assert_v the_o regal_a supremacy_n accuse_v the_o church-service_n of_o idolatry_n deny_v the_o corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n this_o again_o he_o assert_n upon_o his_o own_o authority_n which_o have_v need_v to_o be_v great_a since_o it_o contradict_v all_o other_o of_o the_o bishop_n eject_v by_o q._n mary_n beside_o 247._o beside_o bur._n hist_o v._o 2._o p._n 247._o those_o who_o make_v room_n for_o the_o re-entrance_n of_o the_o former_a possessor_n not_o unjust_o eject_v so_o far_o as_o have_v yet_o appe●●●d_v and_o therefore_o unjust_o reintroduce_v 256._o reintroduce_v bur._n v._o 2._o coll._n p._n 256._o four_o of_o they_o holgate_n farrars_n bird_n and_o bush_n be_v eject_v for_o marriage_n 257._o marriage_n ibid._n p._n 257._o three_z other_o tailor_n hooper_n and_o harley_n be_v deprive_v by_o delegate_n who_o be_v empower_v to_o declare_v their_o see_v void_a as_o they_o be_v already_o void_a 275._o void_a bur._n v._o 2._o p._n 275._o barlow_n be_v make_v to_o resign_v 257._o resign_v bur._n v._o 2._o p._n 257._o cranmer_z the_o only_a remain_a bishop_n in_o the_o catalogue_n be_v esteem_v archbishop_n till_o he_o be_v degrade_v for_o heresy_n so_o that_o he_o indeed_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o see_n and_o of_o his_o life_n together_o for_o the_o cause_n allege_v now_o as_o for_o those_o which_o be_v eject_v for_o marriage_n it_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o statute_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o the_o synodical_a act_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n nor_o be_v it_o to_o any_o purpose_n which_o our_o author_n urge_v that_o these_o act_n of_o the_o parliament_n and_o synod_n be_v repeal_v since_o a_o repeal_n can_v only_o abrogate_v the_o law_n for_o the_o future_a not_o void_a it_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o may_v make_v that_o marriage_n shall_v be_v not_o that_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v unlawful_a it_o may_v legitimate_a the_o proceed_n against_o these_o bishop_n if_o they_o retain_v their_o wife_n not_o warrant_v the_o deprivation_n of_o they_o for_o what_o be_v pass_v nor_o be_v it_o more_o material_a which_o be_v here_o urge_v that_o the_o law_n which_o legitimate_a such_o marriage_n be_v void_a in_o their_o make_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o superior_a council_n until_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o those_o council_n which_o prohibit_v such_o marriage_n be_v our_o lawful_a superior_n and_o if_o so_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v such_o a_o yoke_n upon_o their_o subject_n for_o these_o council_n he_o refer_v i_o to_o the_o discourse_n of_o celibacy_n and_o for_o a_o reply_n i_o refer_v he_o to_o the_o answer_n to_o it_o as_o for_o the_o next_o 3_o bishop_n tailor_n hooper_n and_o harley_n their_o judge_n be_v not_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o cause_n who_o have_v power_n to_o declare_v their_o see_v void_a as_o they_o be_v already_o void_a but_o let_v we_o at_o last_o suppose_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o deprivation_n the_o same_o as_o be_v by_o he_o allege_v as_o it_o be_v confess_v they_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o cranmer_n be_v deprive_v and_o for_o which_o he_o and_o other_o be_v burn_v yet_o whether_o these_o be_v just_a cause_n of_o deprivation_n or_o not_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o this_o man_n be_v confident_a assertion_n but_o on_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n it_o seem_v something_o arrogant_a thus_o magisterial_o in_o one_o breath_n to_o condemn_v all_o those_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reformation_n which_o have_v hitherto_o stand_v the_o shock_n against_o all_o their_o argument_n and_o their_o faggot_n their_o bellarmine_n and_o their_o bonner_n the_o reformer_n for_o some_o year_n have_v be_v write_v and_o die_v in_o justification_n of_o these_o doctrine_n and_o do_v this_o author_n at_o last_o think_v that_o the_o very_a name_n of_o they_o be_v evidence_n enough_o that_o those_o bishop_n who_o be_v eject_v for_o their_o adherence_n to_o they_o be_v rightful_o eject_v as_o to_o the_o cause_n but_o it_o be_v enough_o with_o these_o man_n to_o condemn_v a_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o own_o for_o as_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o particular_a doctrine_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n whether_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n or_o the_o like_a these_o we_o be_v tell_v preface_n tell_v guide_v in_o controu._n preface_n be_v thing_n that_o trouble_v none_o who_o have_v once_o undergo_v the_o mortification_n of_o dethrone_v his_o own_o judgement_n and_o have_v captivate_v it_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n but_o as_o they_o be_v regular_o eject_v as_o to_o the_o cause_n so_o they_o be_v as_o to_o the_o judge_n they_o be_v not_o eject_v he_o say_v by_o the_o queen_n commissioner_n but_o by_o the_o delegate_n of_o the_o western_a patriarch_n this_o not_o to_o speak_v too_o blunt_o be_v a_o 1677._o a_o book_n of_o educ_fw-la p._n 294._o edit_n ox._n 1677._o gasconade_n with_o a_o witness_n have_v not_o the_o world_n be_v present_v with_o a_o collection_n of_o record_n such_o a_o assertion_n as_o this_o will_v have_v be_v more_o tolerable_a but_o to_o tell_v we_o they_o be_v not_o deprive_v by_o the_o queen_n commissioner_n when_o we_o can_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o 257._o the_o bur._n vol._n 2._o coll._n p._n 256._o 257._o original_a commission_n by_o which_o they_o be_v deprive_v become_v one_o who_o write_v as_o if_o he_o have_v no_o reputation_n to_o lose_v but_o the_o judge_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v canonical_a the_o delegate_n of_o the_o prince_n have_v before_o be_v affirm_v to_o be_v uncanonical_a and_o this_o be_v a_o knot_n impossible_a to_o be_v untie_v the_o knight-errant_n bold_o cut_v it_o §_o 65_o have_v prove_v that_o these_o bishop_n be_v regular_o eject_v as_o to_o the_o cause_n and_o as_o to_o the_o judge_n the_o next_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v regular_o burn_v too_o as_o for_o the_o burn_a of_o heretic_n it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v he_o say_v that_o the_o secular_a law_n not_o ecclesiastical_a appoint_v it_o and_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n not_o ecclesiastical_a execute_v it_o this_o amount_n to_o no_o more_o than_o that_o king_n be_v the_o pope_n executioner_n they_o be_v require_v to_o
church-government_n part_n v._o a_o relation_n of_o the_o english_a reformation_n and_o the_o lawfulness_n thereof_o examine_v by_o the_o thesis_n deliver_v in_o the_o four_o former_a part_n print_a at_o oxford_n 1687._o the_o content_n chap._n i._n eight_o thesis_n pre-posed_n whereby_o to_o try_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o reformation_n §_o 1._o chap._n ii_o three_o head_n of_o this_o discourse_n i._o 1._o head_n how_o the_o english_a clergy_n be_v first_o induce_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o new_a regal_a supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n §_o 17._o and_o how_o far_o only_o at_o the_o first_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v allow_v it_o §_o 23._o chap._n iii_o ii_o 2._o head_n concern_v what_o supremacy_n be_v afterward_o by_o degree_n confer_v on_o or_o also_o claim_v by_o the_o prince_n §_o 26._o n._n 2._o 1._o in_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o chap._n iu._n 2._o in_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o six_o §_o 38._o chap._n v._n the_o former_a supremacy_n disclaim_v by_o queen_n mary_n and_o by_o the_o bishop_n in_o her_o day_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n re-acknowledged_n §_o 48._o and_o the_o final_a judgement_n of_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n restore_v to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church-doctrine_n under_o king_n edward_n condemn_v §_o 51._o that_o queen_n mary_n clergy_n be_v a_o lawful_a clergy_n that_o the_o bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n day_n be_v not_o lawful_o eject_v §_o 54._o neither_o as_o to_o the_o authority_n eject_v they_o nor_o as_o to_o the_o cause_n that_o the_o bishop_n deprive_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n be_v lawful_o eject_v both_o as_o to_o the_o cause_n and_o as_o to_o the_o judge_n §_o 64._o where_o concern_v the_o burn_a of_o those_o who_o in_o queen_n mary_n day_n be_v by_o the_o church_n condemn_v of_o heresy_n §_o 65._o and_o therefore_o other_o lawful_o introduce_v in_o their_o place_n chap._n vi_o 3._o in_o the_o time_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n that_o as_o ample_a a_o supremacy_n be_v claim_v and_o by_o parliament_n confer_v on_o she_o as_o on_o king_n henry_n or_o edward_n §_o 70._o where_o concern_v certain_a qualification_n of_o her_o supremacy_n urge_v by_o the_o reform_a §_o 72._o and_o the_o reply_v to_o they_o but_o such_o supremacy_n not_o acknowledge_v or_o consent_v to_o by_o the_o clergy_n §_o 77._o chap._n vii_o iii_o 3._o head_n how_o according_a to_o such_o supremacy_n assume_v these_o three_o prince_n act_v in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n §_o 78._o 1._o the_o act_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n in_o the_o abrogate_a of_o former_a ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o compile_v a_o new_a body_n of_o they_o in_o put_v forth_o a_o model_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o six_o article_n §_o 81._o where_o concern_v the_o complaint_n make_v by_o protestant_n of_o his_o abuse_n of_o the_o supremacy_n in_o the_o consecrate_v and_o confirm_v of_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o §_o 86._o in_o the_o put_n down_o of_o monastery_n etc._n etc._n §_o 87._o the_o pretence_n thereof_o §_o 89._o reflection_n upon_o these_o pretence_n §_o 93._o in_o the_o dispense_n with_o the_o former_a church_n canon_n concern_v marriage_n fast_n holy_a day_n etc._n etc._n §_o 99_o in_o the_o publish_n and_o afterward_o prohibit_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n §_o 101._o chap._n viii_o 2._o the_o act_n of_o king_n edward_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n §_o 104._o 1._o set_a down_o first_o more_o general_o in_o put_v forth_o certain_a injunction_n and_o doctrinal_a homily_n send_v commission_n through_o the_o realm_n and_o eject_v the_o refractory_a clergy_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o prohibition_n of_o preach_v till_o he_o have_v settle_v religion_n the_o defence_n make_v by_o the_o protestant_n divine_v concern_v king_n edward_n proceed_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o reply_n thereto_o §_o 111._o where_o concern_v the_o clergy_n concurrence_n and_o consent_n to_o the_o king_n reformation_n §_o 119._o chap._n ix_o 2._o more_o particular_o in_o send_v certain_a doctrinal_a article_n to_o be_v subscribe_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n in_o repeal_n the_o six_o article_n pass_v by_o synod_n in_o henry_n the_o eighth_n time_n §_o 137._o in_o seize_v on_o religious_a house_n and_o some_o bishop_n land_n and_o deny_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o monastic_a vow_n in_o deface_a image_n in_o enjoin_v administration_n of_o the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n §_o 142._o in_o suppress_v the_o former_a church-liturgy_n ordinal_n and_o other_o ritual_n §_o 143._o in_o set_v up_o new_a form_n of_o celebrate_v the_o communion_n §_o 144._o of_o ordination_n §_o 145._o of_o common-prayer_n §_o 146._o out_o of_o which_o be_v eject_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n §_o 147._o where_o 1._o concern_v the_o alteration_n of_o the_o first_o common-prayer-book_n of_o king_n edward_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 148._o 2._o concern_v the_o further_a alteration_n in_o the_o second_o common-prayer-book_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n §_o 149._o 3._o concern_v the_o reduction_n of_o some_o thing_n touch_v this_o matter_n in_o the_o new_a common-prayer-book_n prepare_v for_o scotland_n to_o the_o first_o form_n of_o king_n edward_n §_o 150._o much_o complain_v of_o in_o laudensium_fw-la autocatacrisis_fw-la §_o 151._o and_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n prohibit_v when_o none_o other_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o priest_n §_o 152._o and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n expunge_v out_o of_o the_o litany_n §_o 154._o and_o the_o necessity_n of_o sacerdotal_a confession_n relax_v §_o 155._o chap._n x._o in_o set_v forth_o a_o second_o form_n of_o common-prayer_n than_o which_o the_o first_o be_v in_o many_o thing_n much_o more_o moderate_a §_o 157._o in_o which_o second_o book_n be_v rectify_v and_o remove_v many_o thing_n which_o give_v offence_n in_o the_o former_a §_o 158._o among_o the_o rest_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o several_a expression_n that_o seem_v to_o infer_v the_o real_a or_o corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n §_o 160._o where_o concern_v the_o reduction_n of_o some_o thing_n touch_v this_o presence_n make_v in_o the_o new_a liturgy_n for_o scotland_n to_o king_n edward_n first_o form_n §_o 161._o much_o complain_v of_o in_o laudensium_fw-la autocatacrisis_fw-la in_o the_o abrogation_n of_o several_a ecclesiastical_a law_n concern_v fast_n celibacy_n of_o the_o clergy_n &c_n &c_n last_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o 42_o article_n of_o religion_n different_a from_o the_o former_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 165._o where_o whether_o these_o article_n be_v pass_v by_o any_o synod_n chap._n xi_o 3._o the_o act_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n §_o 170._o all_o the_o former_a decree_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o king_n henry_n and_o king_n edward_n day_n be_v reverse_v by_o the_o clergy_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n her_o calling_n of_o a_o synod_n which_o declare_v against_o the_o reformation_n a_o disputation_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o r●●●●med_a divine_n §_o 177._o the_o regal_a supremacy_n and_o all_o that_o king_n edward_n have_v do_v in_o the_o reformation_n now_o reestablish_v by_o the_o qu._n and_o parliament_n §_o 179._o but_o not_o by_o the_o clergy_n the_o eject_v of_o the_o bishop_n for_o refuse_v the_o oath_n of_o her_o supremacy_n §_o 180._o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o this_o ejection_n concern_v regal_a supremacy_n how_o far_o it_o seem_v to_o extend_v §_o 181._o how_o far_o not_o §_o 183._o that_o submission_n to_o the_o regal_a supremacy_n in_o this_o late_a kind_n be_v require_v from_o those_o bishop_n §_o 184._o concern_v foreign_a supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n how_o far_o it_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v §_o 185._o that_o the_o renounce_v such_o supremacy_n be_v require_v of_o those_o bishop_n §_o 186._o that_o so_o many_o of_o queen_n mary_n bishop_n can_v not_o be_v lawful_o eject_v on_o any_o other_o ground_n as_o will_v render_v the_o protestant_a bishop_n a_o major_a part_n §_o 187._o chap._n xii_o concern_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o queen_n protestant_a bishop_n remain_v since_o king_n edward_n day_n §_o 190._o n._n 1._o concern_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o new_a bishop_n ordain_v in_o qu._n elizabeth_n day_n §_o 191._o whether_o their_o ordination_n unlawful_a according_a to_o the_o church_n canon_n §_o 193._o where_o concern_v the_o queen_n as_o supreme_a in_o ecclesiastical_n her_o dispense_n with_o the_o former_a ecclesiastical_a law_n for_o their_o ordination_n §_o 194._o chap._n xiii_o digression_n concern_v the_o opinion_n of_o several_a protestant_n divine_v touch_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o prince_n reform_v of_o religion_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n against_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o clergy_n when_o to_o he_o seem_v a_o necessity_n that_o require_v it_o 196._o opinion_n of_o dr._n field_n §_o 197._o of_o mr._n mason_n §_o 199._o
they_o and_o all_o the_o cause_n emergent_a from_o they_o the_o bishop_n be_v judge_n of_o such_o be_v cause_n of_o faith_n ministration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o sacramental_n subordination_n of_o inferior_a clergy_n to_o their_o superior_a rite_n liturgy_n etc._n etc._n as_o for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n he_o lay_v down_o this_o rule_n p._n 236_o whatsoever_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n do_v take_v cognizance_n of_o before_o it_o be_v christian_n the_o same_o it_o take_v notice_n of_o after_o it_o be_v christen_v and_o these_o be_v all_o action_n civil_a all_o public_a violation_n of_o justice_n all_o breach_n of_o municipal_a law_n these_o the_o church_n say_v he_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o unless_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o prince_n these_o be_v indulge_v to_o it_o these_o by_o their_o favour_n then_o indulge_v but_o not_o so_o the_o former_a according_o p._n 239._o he_o say_v both_o prince_n and_o bishop_n have_v indict_v synod_n in_o several_a age_n upon_o the_o exigence_n of_o several_a occasion_n and_o have_v several_a power_n for_o the_o engagement_n of_o clerical_a obedience_n and_o attendance_n upon_o such_o solemnity_n that_o the_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n have_v a_o compulsory_a derive_v from_o christ_n only_o viz._n infliction_n of_o censure_n by_o excommunication_n or_o other_o minores_fw-la plagae_fw-la which_o be_v in_o order_n to_o it_o and_o that_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a of_o the_o jurisdiction_n viz._n that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o external_a compulsory_n i._n e_fw-la as_o he_o say_v before_o to_o superadd_a a_o temporal_a penalty_n upon_o contumacy_n or_o some_o other_o way_n abett_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 243._o he_o say_v that_o in_o those_o case_n in_o which_o by_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n bishop_n may_v or_o in_o which_o they_o must_v use_v excommunication_n no_o power_n can_v forbid_v they_o for_o what_o power_n christ_n have_v give_v they_o no_o man_n can_v take_v away_o and_o p._n 144._o that_o the_o church_n may_v inflict_v her_o censure_n upon_o her_o delinquent_a child_n without_o ask_v leave_n that_o christ_n be_v her_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o that_o he_o be_v her_o warrant_n and_o security_n and_o p._n 245._o that_o the_o king_n supreme_a regal_a power_n in_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o all_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o priestly_a office_n be_v not_o precise_o by_o god_n law_n employ_v for_o regiment_n and_o cure_n of_o soul_n i_o suppose_v those_o he_o name_v before_o p._n 237._o and_o in_o these_o also_o that_o all_o the_o external_a compulsory_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o he_o expound_v it_o before_o p._n 239_o be_v the_o king_n and_o last_o p._n 241._o he_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n in_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n emperor_n make_v humble_a and_o fair_a remonstrance_n of_o the_o distinction_n of_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o as_o they_o may_v not_o entrench_v upon_o the_o royalty_n so_o neither_o betray_v the_o right_n which_o christ_n concredit_v to_o they_o to_o the_o encroachment_n of_o a_o exterior_a jurisdiction_n and_o power_n i._n e_fw-la the_o royal._n see_v the_o like_a expression_n frequent_a in_o bishop_n bramhal_o schism_n guard_v p._n 61._o all_o which_o our_o king_n say_v he_o assume_v to_o themselves_o be_v the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o coactive_a power_n to_o be_v exercise_v by_o person_n capable_a of_o the_o respective_a branch_n of_o it_o i._n e_fw-la of_o that_o regiment_n and_o p._n 63_o he_o comment_v thus_o on_o the_o 37_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n you_o see_v the_o power_n be_v political_a the_o sword_n be_v political_a all_o be_v political_a our_o king_n leave_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a to_o those_o to_o who_o christ_n have_v leave_v it_o and_o p._n 92_o he_o say_v we_o see_v the_o primitive_a father_n do_v assemble_v synod_n and_o make_v canon_n before_o there_o be_v any_o christian_a emperor_n but_o they_o have_v no_o coactive_a power_n to_o compel_v any_o man_n against_o his_o will_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o power_n which_o christian_n prince_n bring_v in_o to_o they_o without_o take_v away_o i_o hope_v any_o of_o that_o power_n which_o the_o church_n from_o christ_n hold_v under_o heathen_a prince_n and_o p._n 119_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o bishop_n be_v always_o esteem_v the_o proper_a judge_n of_o the_o canon_n both_o for_o compose_v of_o they_o and_o execute_v of_o they_o but_o with_o this_o caution_n that_o to_o make_v they_o law_n he_o mean_v such_o law_n for_o observance_n of_o which_o secular_a coaction_n may_v be_v use_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o prince_n be_v require_v and_o to_o give_v the_o bishop_n a_o coactive_a power_n to_o execute_v they_o the_o prince_n grant_v or_o concession_n be_v needful_a do_v not_o this_o bishop_n mean_v here_o that_o bishop_n may_v both_o compose_v and_o execute_v canon_n in_o the_o king_n dominion_n and_o use_v the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n only_o that_o they_o can_v use_v no_o coaction_n by_o pecuniary_a or_o corporal_a punishment_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o without_o he_o but_o see_v below_o §_o 22._o the_o bishop_n deprive_v of_o the_o former_a power_n in_o the_o reformation_n see_v more_o of_o this_o §_o 35._o n._n 2._o and_o answer_v to_o chalc._n p._n 161._o he_o say_v it_o be_v coercive_a and_o compulsory_a and_o corrobatory_a power_n it_o be_v the_o application_n of_o the_o matter_n it_o be_v the_o regulate_v of_o the_o exercise_n of_o actual_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o external_a court_v of_o the_o church_n why_o or_o under_o what_o pretence_n to_o prevent_v say_v he_o the_o oppression_n of_o their_o subject_n and_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n not_o therefore_o to_o examine_v what_o in_o those_o external_a court_n of_o the_o church_n be_v pass_v agreeable_a or_o disagreeable_a to_o god_n word_n for_o this_o prince_n be_v to_o learn_v from_o those_o courts_n which_o belong_v to_o sovereign_a prince_n thus_o he_o last_o see_v the_o king_n last_o paper_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n p_o 3_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o though_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o time_n under_o pagan_a prince_n have_v no_o outward_a coercive_a power_n over_o man_n person_n or_o estate_n no_o more_o have_v they_o now_o except_v from_o and_o during_o the_o prince_n pleasure_n yet_o inasmuch_o as_o every_o christian_a man_n when_o he_o become_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n do_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o by_o that_o his_o own_o voluntary_a act_n put_v himself_o under_o their_o government_n so_o christian_a man_n do_v still_o prince_n and_o all_o they_o exercise_v a_o very_a large_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o spiritualibus_fw-la in_o make_v ecclesiastical_a canon_n in_o receive_v accusation_n convent_v the_o accuse_v examine_v witness_n judge_v of_o crime_n against_o god_n law_n exclude_v such_o man_n as_o they_o find_v guilty_a of_o scandalous_a offence_n from_o the_o lord_n supper_n enjoin_v penancy_n upon_o they_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n receive_v they_o again_o upon_o their_o repentance_n etc._n etc._n now_o i_o subsume_v the_o same_o make_n of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n the_o same_o church_n discipline_n cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n or_o excommunication_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v and_o must_v be_v allow_v still_o in_o christian_a state_n be_v thing_n which_o as_o bishop_n carleton_n say_v prince_n can_v neither_o give_v to_o nor_o take_v from_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v allow_v still_o all_o those_o mean_n absolute_o sine-quibus_a non_fw-la such_o thing_n can_v be_v do_v and_o these_o be_v mean_n absolute_o necessary_a convening_n for_o the_o make_n of_o canon_n know_v the_o fact_n for_o excommunication_n therefore_o in_o case_n the_o christian_a prince_n will_v not_o call_v they_o they_o may_v assemble_v themselves_o when_o the_o church_n necessity_n require_v such_o canon_n and_o when_o the_o christian_a secular_a court_n will_v not_o they_o may_v examine_v the_o fact_n of_o those_o who_o be_v accuse_v to_o they_o of_o delinquency_n but_o this_o in_o order_n to_o church_n punishment_n only_o when_o ever_o the_o christian_a prince_n or_o state_n be_v to_o they_o as_o a_o heathen_a in_o his_o withdraw_a and_o prohibit_v these_o necessary_a thing_n then_o may_v they_o behave_v themselves_o as_o former_o in_o heathenism_n i._n e_o do_v these_o thing_n without_o their_o leave_n against_o their_o prohibition_n all_o the_o plea_n that_o a_o secular_a state_n subject_v itself_o to_o the_o church_n can_v make_v for_o meddle_v in_o such_o spiritual_a affair_n seem_v to_o be_v this_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v trouble_v now_o as_o former_o to_o do_v all_o because_o the_o state_n with_o its_o more_o aw_a power_n will_v do_v something_o for_o it_o which_o
be_v the_o assisting_z of_o the_o church_n in_o her_o business_n not_o the_o abridge_n of_o she_o in_o her_o power_n the_o second_o thesis_n that_o the_o clergy_n can_v alienate_v or_o make_v over_o and_o give_v away_o to_o the_o secular_a governor_n 2._o §._o 4_o thes_n 2._o or_o to_o his_o minister_n and_o delegate_n any_o authority_n or_o office_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o be_v charge_v with_o by_o christ_n with_o a_o command_n to_o execute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o with_o a_o threat_n to_o become_v answerable_a to_o god_n for_o any_o miscarriage_n of_o the_o people_n by_o their_o default_n therein_o from_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o clergy_n do_v of_o either_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n first_o the_o bind_v themselves_o for_o ever_o to_o any_o secular_a governor_n never_o to_o make_v or_o never_o to_o teach_v abroad_o and_o publish_v to_o the_o people_n his_o subject_n any_o judgement_n or_o decision_n of_o they_o make_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o god_n worship_n or_o make_v for_o reform_v some_o error_n or_o heresy_n or_o other_o abuse_n in_o god_n service_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o such_o governor_n first_o obtain_v thereto_o which_o governor_n as_o i_o say_v though_o christian_a and_o a_o believer_n yet_o may_v be_v a_o sectarist_n a_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n 2._o or_o second_o which_o be_v yet_o worse_o the_o authorise_a of_o the_o secular_a governor_n or_o of_o those_o who_o he_o shall_v please_v to_o choose_v and_o nominate_v who_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o name_v those_o rather_o of_o his_o own_o sect_n to_o determine_v and_o decide_v and_o promulge_v such_o spiritual_a matter_n for_o the_o clergy_n and_o in_o their_o stead_n so_o that_o now_o not_o only_o the_o clergy_n can_v do_v such_o thing_n without_o such_o secular_a governor_n but_o also_o such_o governor_n may_v do_v those_o thing_n without_o the_o clergy_n i_o say_v these_o two_o be_v unlawful_a as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o clergy_n say_v above_o thesis_n the_o first_o to_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o by_o christ_n the_o three_o thesis_n 3._o §._o 5._o thes_n 3._o that_o the_o secular_a prince_n can_v depose_v or_o eject_v front_v the_o exercise_n of_o their_o office_n in_o his_o dominion_n any_o of_o the_o clergy_n neither_o absolute_o without_o any_o cause_n pretend_v as_o he_o may_v remove_v those_o officer_n and_o minister_n under_o he_o who_o hold_v their_o place_n only_o durante_fw-la beneplacite_fw-la nor_o for_o a_o cause_n allege_v if_o it_o be_v such_o as_o this_o namely_o for_o their_o not_o obey_v the_o decision_n which_o he_o or_o his_o civil_a council_n shall_v make_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n or_o for_o their_o transgress_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n 2_o nor_o can_v introduce_v other_o into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o eject_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n which_o consent_n if_o he_o obtain_v i_o reckon_v not_o this_o deposition_n &c._n &c._n to_o be_v his_o act_n but_o they_o and_o here_o note_v that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o other_o clergy_n may_v be_v say_v likewise_o of_o the_o patriarch_n for_o any_o authority_n in_o such_o prince_n dominion_n which_o he_o stand_v possess_v of_o by_o such_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n as_o can_v just_o be_v pretend_v to_o do_v any_o wrong_n to_o the_o civil_a government_n touch_v which_o matter_n see_v church_n gou._n 1._o par._n §_o 38._o etc._n etc._n §_o 6_o first_o the_o prince_n can_v eject_v they_o 1._o 1._o 1._o neither_o without_o give_v any_o cause_n thereof_o because_o they_o hold_v not_o these_o their_o office_n from_o the_o prince_n much_o less_o from_o he_o only_o during_o pleasure_n but_o they_o receive_v they_o by_o solemn_a ordination_n from_o their_o predecessor_n in_o this_o ministry_n the_o substitute_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n even_o this_o office_n among_o the_o rest_n to_o oversee_v instruct_v and_o use_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o make_v or_o publish_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o impose_v censure_n over_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n in_o what_o prince_n dominion_n soever_o or_o in_o whatsoever_o province_n or_o diocese_n thereof_o as_o every_o one_o by_o his_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n be_v appoint_v as_o appear_v by_o their_o equal_o exercise_v such_o office_n in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n in_o all_o dominion_n distribute_v into_o several_a provincial_n and_o parochial_a government_n the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v say_v at_o the_o first_o to_o have_v allot_v to_o themselves_o several_a circuit_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n even_o when_o the_o supreme_a power-civil_a not_o only_o licence_v not_o but_o oppose_v and_o prohibit_v they_o to_o do_v it_o on_o pain_n of_o death_n of_o which_o matter_n see_v mr._n thorndike_n right_o of_o the_o church_n 1_o chap._n see_v the_o church_n say_v he_o subsist_v three_o hundred_o year_n before_o any_o state_n profess_v christianity_n whatsoever_o right_o it_o use_v during_o that_o time_n manifest_o therefore_o it_o ought_v still_o to_o use_v and_o enjoy_v this_o be_v the_o most_o pertinent_a evidence_n to_o show_v the_o bound_n of_o it_o i._n e._n of_o such_o right_n independent_a on_o any_o temporal_a governor_n see_v he_o 4._o c._n p._n 169._o and_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v they_o who_o first_o set_v up_o this_o church_n government_n in_o civil_a state_n and_o st._n paul_n make_v titus_n superintendent_n of_o crect_n and_o timothy_n of_o ephesus_n for_o spiritual_a affair_n without_o the_o secular_a governor_n leave_v *_o who_o be_v in_o these_o place_n to_o ordain_v other_o to_o preserve_v for_o ever_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n deliver_v to_o they_o for_o this_o cause_n say_v paul_n to_o titus_n 1._o chap._n 5._o ver_fw-la leave_v i_o thou_o in_o crect_n that_o thou_o shall_v set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v leave_v undo_v and_o ordain_v presbyter_n in_o every_o city_n as_o i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o which_o ordain_v of_o other_o signify_v also_o institution_n in_o the_o charge_n or_o cure_v whereto_o they_o minister_v as_o bishop_n carleton_n confess_v jurisdict_v regal_a episcopal_n 4._o chap._n pag._n 40._o again_o *_o who_o be_v in_o these_o place_n to_o receive_v accusation_n hear_v witness_n which_o can_v be_v without_o appoint_a assembly_n and_o meeting_n silence_v false_a teacher_n excommunicate_a offender_n see_v tit._n 1.11_o rev._n 2.20_o 1._o tim._n 1.3.5.19_o against_o a_o elder_a receive_v not_o a_o accusation_n but_o before_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n now_o he_o say_v the_o same_o author_n pag._n 42._o that_o be_v appoint_v to_o hear_v accusation_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o testimony_n of_o witness_n be_v seat_v in_o a_o place_n of_o judgement_n with_o jurisdiction_n see_v more_o of_o this_o in_o success_n clergy_n §_o 4._o and_o this_o they_o do_v when_o the_o temporal_a governor_n of_o those_o place_n licence_v they_o not_o yea_o persecute_v they_o so_o athanasius_n eject_v by_o constantius_n his_o emperor_n from_o the_o charge_n which_o the_o church_n have_v commit_v to_o he_o of_o alexandria_n and_o paulus_n from_o constantinople_n be_v nevertheless_o account_v still_o the_o true_a bishop_n of_o those_o see_v prince_n indeed_o may_v deprive_v the_o clergy_n at_o pleasure_n or_o according_a as_o covenant_n make_v of_o what_o they_o bestow_v on_o they_o house_n land_n privilege_n jurisdiction_n lordship_n temporal_a but_o the_o office_n abovenamed_a they_o bestow_v not_o 2._o again_o as_o prince_n may_v not_o depose_v they_o at_o pleasure_n so_o neither_o for_o any_o cause_n which_o concern_v thing_n spiritual_a without_o the_o clergy_n consent_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o judge_n to_o be_v a_o competent_a one_o have_v as_o well_o potestatem_fw-la in_o causam_fw-la as_o in_o personam_fw-la and_o the_o prince_n as_o have_v be_v mention_v in_o the_o first_o thesis_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o judge_v such_o cause_n mere_o spiritual_a to_o this_o may_v be_v add_v that_o neither_o heathen_a nor_o heretical_a prince_n can_v just_o prohibit_v total_o all_o that_o clergy_n who_o the_o church_n declare_v orthodox_n from_o enter_v into_o or_o from_o preach_v and_o otherwise_o officiate_a in_o divine_a matter_n within_o his_o dominion_n and_o if_o he_o put_v such_o to_o death_n for_o disobey_v this_o his_o command_n when_o as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o god_n and_o christ_n who_o send_v they_o to_o all_o nation_n in_o effect_n he_o put_v they_o to_o death_n for_o obey_v god_n command_n and_o they_o die_v martyr_n as_o also_o the_o primitive_a martyr_n be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o not_o obey_v the_o emperor_n law_n concern_v matter_n of_o their_o religion_n §_o 7_o second_o 2._o 2._o as_o the_o prince_n can_v thus_o eject_v or_o depose_v clergy_n so_o neither_o can_v he_o introduce_v any_o into_o the_o place_n of_o those_o who_o be_v eject_v or_o decease_v without_o
he_o discover_v the_o king_n affection_n settle_v on_o anne_n bullen_n one_o incline_v to_o lutheranism_n 1036._o see_v fox_n p._n 988._o 1036._o he_o prove_v averse_a now_o to_o what_o he_o have_v former_o advance_v and_o delay_n the_o decision_n of_o the_o divorce_n so_o long_o till_o at_o last_o the_o pope_n move_v thereto_o by_o the_o emperor_n nephew_n to_o queen_n katherine_n do_v upon_o her_o appeal_n revoke_v the_o cause_n to_o rome_n and_o inhibit_v the_o legate_n proceed_n it_o be_v say_v also_o that_o some_o other_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o english_a clergy_n 1610._o see_v fox_n p._n 96._o and_o 962._o edit_fw-la 1610._o whether_o it_o be_v conscientious_o or_o out_o of_o the_o same_o disaffection_n of_o they_o to_o anne_n bullen_n i_o can_v tell_v much_o dislike_v the_o same_o divorce_n §_o 18_o the_o king_n for_o this_o much_o displease_v with_o both_o cardinal_n and_o clergy_n first_o accuse_v the_o cardinal_n to_o have_v incur_v a_o praemunire_n for_o have_v exercise_v his_o legantine_n office_n in_o his_o dominion_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n contrary_a to_o a_o statute_n make_v in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n richard_n the_o second_o yet_o have_v the_o king_n former_o be_v please_v to_o appear_v before_o he_o in_o court_n as_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o his_o delegated_a judge_n together_o with_o campegius_fw-la in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n divorce_n upon_o this_o he_o be_v condemn_v 21._o see_v godw._n annal._n an._n reg._n henr._n 21._o and_o all_o his_o estate_n seize_v on_o by_o the_o king_n though_o the_o cardinal_n plead_v that_o it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o his_o majesty_n that_o he_o will_v not_o presume_v to_o execute_v his_o power_n legantine_n before_o the_o king_n have_v be_v please_v to_o ratify_v it_o with_o his_o royal_a assent_n give_v under_o his_o seal_n which_o notwithstanding_o he_o can_v not_o produce_v that_o and_o all_o his_o good_n be_v take_v from_o he_o see_v godwin_n annal_n p._n 107._o who_o also_o p._n 119._o say_v 119._o see_v godw._n annal._n p._n 107_o and_o p._n 119._o that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o wolsey_n be_v license_v to_o exercise_v his_o authority_n legantine_n §_o 19_o after_o this_o fall_n of_o wolsey_n next_o a_o bill_n be_v give_v up_o in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v 1530._o and_o the_o sum_n demand_v from_o the_o clergy_n as_o conspire_v with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o a_o 100000_o l._n charge_n that_o the_o king_n have_v be_v put_v to_o to_o obtain_v so_o many_o instrument_n from_o foreign_a university_n which_o have_v decide_v this_o matter_n from_o which_o university_n the_o king_n be_v say_v to_o have_v procure_v their_o suffrage_n for_o his_o divorce_n not_o without_o see_v several_a of_o they_o with_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n concern_v which_o see_v the_o testimony_n of_o several_a author_n produce_v by_o sanders_n p._n 49._o etc._n etc._n some_o of_o those_o he_o quote_v say_v that_o they_o have_v money_n offer_v to_o themselves_o some_o that_o they_o be_v eye-witness_n of_o it_o receive_v by_o other_o though_o with_o your_o leave_n to_o make_v here_o a_o little_a digression_n touch_v this_o controversy_n these_o university_n at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o consider_v only_o the_o point_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o one_o marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n when_o such_o former_a marriage_n be_v consummate_v by_o carnal_a know_v of_o she_o see_v the_o determination_n of_o paris_n and_o other_o in_o hollinsh_fw-mi p._n 924._o put_v in_o the_o clause_n so_o that_o the_o marriage_n be_v consummate_v without_o consider_v that_o circumstance_n whether_o katherine_n be_v carnal_o know_v by_o her_o first_o husband_n which_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o advocate_n prince_n arthur_n be_v think_v somewhat_o infirm_a and_o be_v but_o fifteen_o year_n old_a when_o he_o marry_v she_o and_o die_v short_o after_o you_o may_v see_v if_o you_o have_v the_o curiosity_n what_o be_v say_v for_o the_o consummation_n of_o that_o marriage_n in_o fox_n mon._n p._n 958._o edit_fw-la 1610._o against_o it_o in_o sanders_n the_o schism_n angelo_fw-mi l._n 1._o l._n p._n 40._o yet_o though_o the_o former_a marriage_n have_v be_v consummate_a many_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o age_n of_o several_a nation_n among_o who_o be_v fisher_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n and_o tonstall_n bishop_n of_o duresme_fw-fr who_o you_o may_v find_v diligent_o reckon_v up_o to_o the_o number_n of_o almost_o twenty_o by_o sanders_n the_o schism_n angli_fw-la 1._o l._n p._n 42._o 53_o 54._o write_v book_n in_o justification_n that_o the_o marriage_n of_o henry_n with_o katherine_n be_v a_o matter_n dispensable_a for_o though_o this_o be_v agree_v on_o all_o side_n that_o papa_n non_fw-la habet_fw-la potestatem_fw-la dispensandi_fw-la in_o impediment_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la naturali_fw-la conjugium_fw-la dirimentibus_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la jure_fw-la canonico_n tantum_fw-la dirimunt_fw-la yet_o some_o of_o these_o author_n hold_v first_o that_o all_o the_o impediment_n name_v in_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n be_v not_o dirimentia_fw-la conjugium_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la naturali_fw-la which_o only_o now_o oblige_v christian_n and_o then_o second_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o affinity_n only_o primus_fw-la gradus_fw-la rectae_fw-la lineae_fw-la as_o between_o father_n and_o his_o son_n wife_n and_o not_o primus_fw-la gradus_fw-la lineae_fw-la collateralis_fw-la or_o transversae_fw-la as_o between_o the_o brother_n and_o his_o brother_n wife_n be_v such_o a_o impediment_n as_o do_v dirimere_fw-la conjugium_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la naturali_fw-la and_o indispensable_o other_o gather_v the_o law_n in_o levit._n 18.16_o dispensable_a in_o some_o case_n from_o the_o express_a dispensation_n make_v therein_o deut._n 25.5_o now_o the_o preservation_n of_o peace_n between_o the_o two_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o spain_n be_v a_o motive_n for_o such_o dispensation_n much_o more_o considerable_a than_o that_o mention_v in_o deut._n the_o preservation_n of_o the_o name_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o decease_a see_v card._n cajetan_n de_fw-fr conjug_n reg._n angl._n 6._o c._n and_o for_o the_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a in_o this_o matter_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o university_n after_o you_o have_v read_v the_o story_n in_o sanders_n p._n 49_o 50_o 51._o concern_v they_o and_o especial_o concern_v oxford_n as_o likewise_o what_o be_v say_v by_o lord_n herbert_n hist_o hen._n 8._o p._n 324_o 325._o see_v what_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n 1._o mar._n 1._o c._n say_v of_o they_o viz._n that_o this_o marriage_n betwixt_o henry_n and_o katherine_n be_v solemnize_v by_o the_o deliberate_a and_o mature_a consideration_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o notable_a man_n in_o learning_n in_o those_o day_n of_o christendom_n that_o the_o perverse_a affection_n of_o some_o a_o very_a few_o person_n for_o their_o own_o singular_a glory_n and_o vain_a reputation_n pretend_v the_o same_o marriage_n to_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o this_o intent_n cause_v the_o seal_n as_o well_o of_o certain_a university_n in_o italy_n and_o france_n to_o be_v get_v as_o it_o be_v for_o a_o testimony_n by_o the_o corruption_n with_o money_n of_o a_o few_o light_a person_n scholar_n of_o the_o say_a university_n as_o also_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o university_n of_o this_o realm_n to_o be_v obtain_v by_o sinister_a work_n secret_a threaten_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o archbishop_n cranmer_n in_o give_v sentence_n that_o the_o say_a matrimony_n be_v unlawful_a take_v his_o foundation_n partly_o upon_o his_o own_o unadvised_a judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n join_v therewith_o the_o pretend_a testimony_n of_o the_o say_a university_n and_o partly_o upon_o bare_a and_o most_o untrue_a conjecture_n i._n e_fw-la concern_v the_o consummation_n of_o the_o former_a marriage_n of_o katherine_n with_o arthur_n and_o see_v what_o lord_n h●rbert_n deliver_v of_o the_o hesitancy_n of_o the_o german_a protestant_a divine_n be_v several_a time_n and_o that_o long_a after_o the_o divorce_n make_v request_v thereto_o by_o king_n henry_n to_o declare_v the_o divorce_n lawful_a p._n 448._o and_o 379._o where_o he_o say_v that_o for_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o divorce_n propose_v to_o the_o german_a divine_v luther_n justus_n ionas_n philip_n melancthon_n and_o other_o they_o delay_v to_o approve_v it_o and_o the_o king_n be_v judicious_o advise_v by_o his_o agent_n from_o thence_o not_o to_o require_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o which_o will_v be_v too_o hard_a to_o grant_v i_o have_v make_v this_o digression_n to_o show_v you_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n which_o be_v in_o this_o difficult_a matter_n that_o you_o may_v see_v the_o pope_n stand_v not_o alone_o in_o his_o judgement_n and_o how_o the_o several_a interest_n of_o several_a time_n justify_v and_o condemn_v the_o same_o thing_n now_o to_o return_v to_o our_o matter_n in_o hand_n §_o 19_o the_o foresay_a sum_n of_o 100000_o l._n spend_v
upon_o the_o university_n abroad_o be_v demand_v by_o the_o parliament_n from_o the_o clergy_n at_o home_n because_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o cardinal_n and_o some_o other_o chief_a among_o they_o be_v through_o their_o falsehood_n and_o dissimulation_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o foreign_a expense_n which_o sum_n they_o resolute_o refuse_v to_o contribute_v the_o whole_a clergy_n be_v sue_v by_o the_o king_n and_o condemn_v by_o the_o king_n bench_n in_o a_o praemunire_n also_o for_o receive_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o cardinal_n power_n legantine_n exercise_v by_o he_o ignorant_o or_o presumptuous_o without_o the_o king_n consent_n and_o allowance_n first_o obtain_v the_o clergy_n thus_o become_v liable_a at_o the_o king_n pleasure_n to_o the_o imprisonment_n of_o their_o person_n and_o confiscation_n of_o their_o estate_n assemble_v themselves_o in_o the_o house_n of_o convocation_n offer_v to_o pay_v for_o their_o ransom_n the_o demand_v 100000_o l._n §_o 20_o but_o the_o king_n have_v now_o no_o hope_n of_o obtain_v a_o licence_n for_o his_o divorce_n from_o the_o pope_n who_o at_o this_o time_n stand_v much_o in_o awe_n of_o the_o emperor_n victorious_a in_o italy_n and_o a_o near_a kinsman_n and_o favourer_n of_o queen_n katherine_n that_o the_o pope_n decree_n may_v be_v of_o no_o force_n against_o he_o negociate_n also_o by_o his_o agent_n with_o the_o clergy_n whilst_o in_o these_o fear_n to_o give_v he_o the_o title_n of_o supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n within_o his_o dominion_n make_v account_n that_o this_o obtain_v he_o have_v the_o assent_n of_o his_o own_o clergy_n at_o his_o beck_n for_o the_o null_n of_o his_o former_a marriage_n therefore_o in_o the_o draw_v up_o of_o the_o clergy_n petition_v to_o the_o king_n for_o release_v of_o the_o praemunire_n it_o be_v signify_v from_o the_o court_n cujus_fw-la consilii_fw-la cranmerus_fw-la &_o cromwellus_fw-la clam_fw-la authores_fw-la fuisse_fw-la existimabantur_fw-la say_v the_o author_n antiq._n brittanic_a p._n 325._o that_o a_o title_n shall_v be_v prefix_v wherein_o they_o shall_v style_v the_o king_n ecclesiae_fw-la &_o cleri_fw-la anglicani_n protector_n &_o supremum_fw-la caput_fw-la or_o else_o the_o petition_n will_v not_o be_v accept_v to_o which_o with_o some_o difficulty_n they_o agree_v so_o as_o qualify_a it_o with_o this_o clause_n quantum_fw-la per_fw-la legem_fw-la christi_fw-la licet_fw-la but_o the_o king_n again_o except_v at_o this_o limitation_n as_o unworthy_a the_o clergy_n who_o either_o do_v or_o ought_v to_o know_v and_o definitive_o instruct_v other_o what_o christ_n law_n do_v or_o do_v not_o allow_v at_o last_o upon_o renew_a threat_n this_o clause_n also_o be_v procure_v to_o be_v omit_v see_v antiquit._n brittannic_n p._n 326._o sed_fw-la regi_fw-la say_v that_o author_n displicuit_fw-la ancipitem_fw-la dubiamque_fw-la mitigationem_fw-la &_o moderationem_fw-la verborum_fw-la a_o cleri_fw-la svi_fw-la synodo_fw-la quae_fw-la de_fw-la christi_fw-la lege_fw-la aut_fw-la certa_fw-la fuit_fw-la aut_fw-la certa_fw-la esse_fw-la debuit_fw-la tam_fw-la frigide_a proferri_fw-la itaque_fw-la cromwellum_fw-la ad_fw-la synodum_fw-la iterum_fw-la mandans_fw-la eam_fw-la aut_fw-la tolli_fw-la voluit_fw-la aut_fw-la clerum_fw-la incursas_fw-la sanctionum_fw-la paenas_fw-la pati_fw-la omnium_fw-la igitur_fw-la ex_fw-la sententiis_fw-la rex_fw-la sine_fw-la ambiguitate_fw-la ullâ_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la angliae_fw-la supremum_fw-la caput_fw-la declaratus_fw-la est_fw-la but_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o do_v till_o after_o the_o clergy_n who_o much_o allege_a that_o the_o king_n or_o some_o of_o his_o successor_n may_v upon_o this_o title_n ruin_n the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o their_o order_n spiritual_a matter_n without_o or_o against_o the_o clergy_n thereof_o have_v obtain_v a_o voluntary_a promise_n from_o he_o to_o this_o effect_n that_o he_o will_v never_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o grant_v assume_v to_o himself_o any_o more_o power_n over_o the_o clergy_n than_o all_o other_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v assume_v nor_o that_o he_o will_v do_v any_o thing_n without_o they_o in_o alter_v order_v or_o judge_v in_o any_o spiritual_a matter_n see_v bishop_n fisher_n life_n publish_v by_o dr._n bayly_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o act_n of_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v so_o understand_v as_o exclude_v all_o authority_n of_o the_o western_a patriarch_n over_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o transfer_v such_o authority_n for_o the_o future_a to_o the_o king_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o four_o thesis_n because_o some_o such_o authority_n be_v confer_v on_o this_o patriarch_n by_o superior_a council_n and_o which_o act_n be_v so_o pass_v by_o they_o that_o as_o dr._n hammond_n acknowledge_v of_o schism_n 7._o c._n it_o be_v easy_a to_o believe_v 20._o see_v church_n gou._n 1._o part_v §._o 4._o and_o §._o 20._o that_o nothing_o but_o the_o apprehension_n of_o danger_n which_o hang_v over_o they_o by_o a_o praemunire_n incur_v by_o they_o can_v probable_o have_v incline_v they_o to_o it_o §_o 22_o after_o the_o concede_a of_o this_o title_n of_o supremacy_n to_o the_o king_n and_o exclusion_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n out_o of_o his_o dominion_n and_o the_o void_a of_o all_o appeal_v make_v hence_o unto_o he_o and_o after_o the_o king_n marriage_n to_o anne_n bullen_n also_o but_o before_o the_o publication_n thereof_o cranmer_n be_v now_o choose_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n upon_o the_o death_n of_o warham_n a_o favourer_n of_o the_o queen_n katherine_n cause_n summon_v she_o to_o appear_v before_o he_o and_o some_o other_o bishop_n and_o commissioner_n and_o upon_o her_o neglect_n solemn_o dissolve_v the_o king_n former_a marriage_n with_o she_o and_o divorce_v he_o from_o she_o §_o 23_o but_o the_o king_n end_n thus_o obtain_v yet_o thing_n rest_v not_o here_o it_o and_o how_o far_o only_o at_o the_o first_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v allow_v it_o but_o whereas_o former_o till_o the_o twenty_o five_o year_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o clergy_n say_v dr._n heylin_n §_o 1._o p_o 7._o after_o call_v by_o the_o king_n writ_n act_v absolute_o in_o their_o convocation_n of_o their_o own_o authority_n the_o king_n or_o parliament_n assent_v or_o ratification_n neither_o concur_v nor_o require_v and_o whereas_o by_o this_o sole_a authority_n which_o they_o have_v in_o themselves_o they_o make_v canon_n declare_v heresy_n convict_v and_o censure_v person_n suspect_v of_o heresy_n &c_n &c_n now_o they_o have_v declare_v the_o king_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n instead_o of_o the_o pope_n the_o western_a patriarch_n it_o seem_v reasonable_a therefore_o that_o no_o act_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v stand_v good_a without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o head_n and_o conduce_v much_o to_o this_o end_n as_o i_o learn_v from_o the_o forename_a dr_n be_v a_o petition_n or_o remonstrance_n exhibit_v to_o the_o king_n by_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o after_o the_o ice_n be_v break_v a._n 1532._o 65._o see_v full●rs_n appeal_v of_o injure_v innocence_n pa._n 2._o p._n 65._o in_o which_o say_v he_o they_o desire_v that_o the_o convocation_n shall_v be_v bring_v down_o to_o the_o same_o level_n with_o the_o house_n of_o parliament_n and_o that_o their_o act_n and_o constitution_n shall_v not_o bind_v their_o subject_n as_o before_o in_o their_o good_n and_o possession_n until_o they_o be_v confirm_v and_o ratify_v by_o the_o regal_a power_n they_o show_v themselves_o aggrieve_v that_o the_o clergy_n of_o this_o realm_n shall_v act_v authoritative_o and_o supreme_o in_o the_o convocation_n and_o they_o in_o parliament_n do_v nothing_o but_o as_o it_o be_v confirm_v and_o ratify_v by_o royal_a assent_n a_o answer_n unto_o which_o remonstrance_n say_v he_o be_v draw_v up_o by_o dr._n gardiner_n then_o new_o make_v bishop_n of_o winchester_n and_o be_v allow_v of_o by_o both_o house_n of_o convocation_n be_v by_o they_o present_v to_o the_o king_n but_o the_o king_n not_o satisfy_v with_o this_o answer_n resolve_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o his_o bent_n and_o therefore_o on_o the_o ten_o of_o may_n send_v a_o paper_n to_o they_o by_o dr._n foxe_n after_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n in_o which_o it_o be_v peremptory_o require_v that_o no_o constitution_n or_o ordinance_n shall_v be_v hereafter_o by_o the_o clergy_n enact_v promulge_v or_o put_v in_o execution_n unless_o the_o king_n highness_n do_v approve_v the_o same_o and_o his_o advice_n and_o favour_n be_v also_o interpon_v for_o the_o execution_n etc._n etc._n whereupon_o on_o the_o fifteen_o of_o the_o same_o month_n they_o make_v their_o absolute_a submission_n so_o he._n and_o thus_o the_o next_o step_n therefore_o of_o this_o reformation_n be_v that_o the_o king_n so_o require_v it_o they_o bind_v themselves_o by_o a_o synodical_a act_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v not_o to_o assemble_v themselves_o at_o all_o without_o the_o king_n writ_n and_o when_o assemble_v not_o to_o enact_v promulge_v or_o execute_v any_o canon_n constitution_n ordinance_n provincial_a or_o
no_o manner_n of_o appeals_n shall_v be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o realm_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o any_o cause_n or_o matter_n of_o what_o nature_n soever_o second_o that_o for_o lack_v of_o justice_n in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o archbishop_n commissioner_n by_o the_o king_n highness_n to_o be_v appoint_v shall_v have_v full_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o hear_v and_o definitive_o to_o determine_v every_o such_o appeal_n with_o the_o cause_n and_o all_o circumstance_n concern_v the_o same_o and_o no_o further_o appeal_v to_o be_v make_v these_o commissioner_n therefore_o appoint_v by_o the_o king_n be_v the_o ultimate_a and_o unappealable_a judge_n after_o the_o archbishop_n in_o all_o spiritual_a matter_n of_o which_o doubtless_o many_o be_v concern_v what_o be_v lawful_a or_o unlawful_a by_o god_n word_n wherein_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n when_o they_o be_v cause_n of_o moment_n appeals_n be_v former_o make_v from_o the_o bishop_n to_o a_o synod_n or_o to_o the_o patriarch_n §_o 34_o again_o 25._o hen._n 8.14_o c._n it_o be_v enact_v by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n that_o no_o speak_v do_v or_o hold_v against_o any_o law_n call_v spiritual_a law_n make_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n by_o the_o policy_n of_o man_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n and_o statute_n of_o the_o realm_n or_o the_o king_n prerogative_n shall_v be_v deem_v to_o be_v heresy_n from_o which_o all_o that_o i_o will_v note_v be_v this_o that_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n undertake_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o heresy_n and_o do_v declare_v that_o no_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n nor_o the_o prerogative_n assume_v by_o the_o king_n have_v any_o thing_n of_o heresy_n in_o they_o again_o it_o be_v enact_v by_o parliament_n 34_o 35._o hen._n 8.1_o c._n that_o if_o any_o spiritual_a person_n or_o person_n shall_v preach_v or_o teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o determination_n which_o since_o an._n dom._n 1540_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o by_o his_o majesty_n as_o be_v aforemention_v that_o then_o every_o such_o offender_n offend_v the_o three_o time_n contrary_a to_o this_o act_n shall_v be_v deem_v and_o adjudge_v a_o heretic_n and_o shall_v suffer_v pain_n of_o death_n by_o burn_v where_o the_o king_n be_v make_v the_o ultimate_a judge_n of_o heresy_n without_o any_o appeal_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o former-quoted_n act_n 25_o hen._n 8.19_o c._n contrary_a to_o the_o first_o and_o seven_o thesis_n and_o the_o protestant_n in_o justify_v this_o supremacy_n must_v allow_v their_o own_o condemnation_n if_o teach_v against_o any_o thing_n write_v in_o the_o book_n call_v the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n or_o a_o necessary_a doctrine_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o king_n authority_n at_o that_o time_n or_o against_o the_o six_o article_n which_o be_v in_o the_o same_o act_n establish_v as_o likewise_o in_o 31._o hen._n 8.14_o c._n the_o publish_v of_o which_o act_n say_v lord_n herbert_n p._n 447._o give_v not_o little_a occasion_n of_o murmur_n since_o to_o revoke_v the_o conscience_n not_o only_o from_o its_o own_o court_n but_o from_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o resolve_v controversy_n to_o such_o a_o abrupt_a decision_n of_o the_o common-law_n as_o be_v there_o stat._n 31._o hen._n 8.14_o c._n set_v down_o 1._o §._o 35._o n._n 1._o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o deturn_v of_o religion_n from_o its_o right_n and_o usual_a course_n now_o to_o reflect_v a_o little_a upon_o these_o several_a act_n forequote_v 1._o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v by_o bishop_n bramhal_o schism_n guard_v §_o 3._o p._n 262._o the_o title_n of_o which_o section_n be_v that_o henry_n the_o eight_o make_v no_o new_a law_n see_v likewise_o his_o vindic._n p._n 86._o 1._o that_o these_o statute_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v only_o declarative_a of_o old_a law_n not_o enactive_a of_o new_a law_n prove_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o fitz-herbert_n and_o of_o the_o lord_n coke_n report_n five_o part._n and_o 2_o schism_n guard_v p._n 61_o 62._o that_o these_o statute_n do_v attribute_v no_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n to_o the_o king_n at_o all_o save_v only_o a_o external_n regiment_n by_o coactive_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o foro_fw-la contentioso_fw-la fox_n the_o first_o of_o these_o if_o you_o please_v to_o compare_v the_o clause_n of_o the_o statute_n before_o rehearse_v with_o the_o former_a statute_n of_o this_o land_n diligent_o collect_v by_o the_o lord_n coke_n report_n 2._o §._o 35._o n._n 2._o five_o part_n and_o with_o those_o also_o mention_v by_o bishop_n bramh._n vindic._n 4._o c._n p._n 63._o etc._n etc._n you_o shall_v find_v no_o such_o thing_n if_o you_o take_v all_o and_o all_o the_o extent_n of_o king_n henry_n statute_n you_o may_v find_v appeals_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o other_o foreign_a judge_n and_o bull_n or_o excommunication_n or_o legation_n from_o he_o except_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o be_v legátus_fw-la natus_fw-la to_o have_v be_v prohibit_v by_o former_a law_n that_o be_v in_o some_o particular_a case_n wherein_o the_o prince_n conceive_v himself_o or_o his_o subject_n to_o be_v injure_v thereby_o in_o his_o or_o their_o temporal_a right_n profit_n security_n or_o also_o in_o some_o ecclesiastical_a indulgement_n obtain_v former_o from_o the_o pope_n see_v that_o indulgement_n grant_v to_o king_n edw._n the_o confessor_n vobis_fw-la &_o posteris_fw-la vestris_fw-la regibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o spelm._n conc._n a._n 1066_o bishop_n bramhal_n vindic._n p._n 66._o this_n appear_v in_o that_o much_o urge_v statute_n 16._o rich._n 2.5_o c._n quote_v in_o vindic._n p._n 80._o where_o upon_o pain_n of_o a_o praemunire_n all_o be_v prohibit_v to_o purchase_v any_o bull_n or_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n from_o rome_n but_o this_o be_v in_o certain_a case_n only_a see_v vindic._n p._n 81._o case_n indeed_o ecclesiastical_a but_o such_o as_o be_v conceive_v contrary_a to_o the_o temporal_a right_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o subject_n which_o all_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n i_o hope_v neither_o be_v nor_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v viz._n these_o case_n pope_n refuse_v the_o king_n or_o other_o laity_n presentment_n of_o a_o person_n to_o the_o benefice_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v of_o such_o a_o person_n who_o orthodoxness_n and_o canonicalness_n the_o clergy_n can_v question_v again_o the_o translation_n by_o the_o pope_n of_o english_a bishop_n out_o of_o the_o realm_n without_o the_o king_n assent_n whereby_o say_v the_o statute_n the_o king_n liege_n sage_n of_o his_o council_n shall_v be_v without_o his_o assent_n and_o against_o his_o will_n carry_v away_o and_o get_v out_o of_o his_o realm_n and_o the_o substance_n and_o treasure_n of_o the_o realm_n shall_v be_v carry_v away_o and_o so_o the_o realm_n destitute_a as_o well_o of_o council_n as_o of_o substance_n sure_o these_o be_v temporal_a considerations_n and_o so_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n which_o have_v be_v so_o free_a at_o all_o time_n that_o it_o have_v be_v in_o no_o earthly_a subjection_n but_o immediate_o subject_a to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n not_o absolute_o as_o the_o bishop_n represent_v it_o vindic._n p._n 80._o but_o in_o all_o thing_n touch_v the_o regality_n of_o the_o same_o crown_n and_o to_o none_o other_o shall_v be_v submit_v to_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n the_o regality_n that_o be_v in_o those_o temporal_a thing_n above_o name_v in_o these_o case_n bull_n &c_n &c_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v prohibit_v as_o infringe_v the_o civil_a right_n and_o to_o this_o statute_n in_o such_o case_n it_o be_v say_v there_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a give_v their_o consent_n but_o meanwhile_o make_v protestation_n say_v the_o statute_n that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o mind_n to_o deny_v or_o affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v not_o excommunicate_a bishop_n nor_o that_o he_o may_v make_v translation_n of_o prelate_n after_o the_o law_n of_o holy_a church_n and_o richard_n the_o second_o notwithstanding_o this_o act_n be_v far_o from_o the_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o his_o realm_n as_o to_o many_o other_o respect_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o zealous_a support_v of_o vrban_n the_o six_o in_o it_o 2._o rich._n 2.7_o again_o you_o may_v find_v perhaps_o appeals_n bull_n &c_n &c_n prohibit_v in_o general_a without_o the_o king_n content_n first_o obtain_v thereto_o but_o this_o not_o out_o of_o a_o intention_n of_o suppress_v all_o such_o appeals_n or_o ecclesiastical_a law_n or_o censure_n whatsoever_o come_v from_o the_o pope_n or_o other_o spiritual_a authority_n abroad_o or_o out_o of_o a_o intention_n of_o deny_v these_o in_o several_a case_n to_o be_v rightful_o belong_v unto_o they_o but_o only_o out_o of_o a_o intention_n to_o examine_v they_o first_o whether_o any_o thing_n be_v contain_v in_o they_o
say_v p._n 92._o if_o thus_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v secular_a prince_n to_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o the_o make_n or_o hinder_v any_o decree_n or_o law_n of_o the_o churchman_n in_o matter_n mere_o spiritual_a but_o only_o to_o have_v such_o a_o sole_a dominion_n over_o the_o secular_a sword_n as_o that_o none_o can_v use_v it_o but_o he_o or_o by_o his_o leave_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o such_o law_n all_o be_v well_o but_o then_o the_o former-quoted_n statute_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o show_v much_o more_o power_n challenge_v than_o the_o bishop_n allow_v this_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n second_o if_o it_o be_v further_o say_v here_o touch_v that_o particular_a statute_n of_o much_o concernment_n 26._o hen._n 8.1_o c._n quote_v before_o §_o 26_o and_o §_o 25._o namely_o 4._o §._o 35._o n._n 4._o 1_o that_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v full_a power_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o visit_v repress_v reform_v all_o such_o error_n and_o heresy_n as_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o spritual_a authority_n &c_n &c_n lawful_o may_v be_v reform_v etc._n etc._n 25._o see_v §._o 25._o if_o it_o be_v say_v here_o that_o the_o king_n have_v only_o this_o power_n therein_o ascribe_v to_o he_o to_o redress_v and_o reform_v the_o error_n and_o heresy_n which_o be_v declare_v such_o by_o the_o church_n by_o former_a council_n or_o by_o the_o synod_n of_o his_o clergy_n but_o that_o he_o have_v no_o power_n give_v he_o to_o judge_v or_o declare_v what_o be_v error_n or_o heresy_n 1._o first_o thus_o then_o he_o have_v not_o all_o the_o power_n give_v he_o which_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n may_v be_v exercise_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o that_o act_n because_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a authority_n also_o that_o may_v declare_v new_a error_n and_o heresy_n or_o that_o may_v reform_v such_o error_n as_o have_v not_o be_v by_o synod_n former_o declare_v such_o and_o it_o seem_v this_o he_o have_v not_o second_o thus_o the_o clause_n end_v the_o act_n any_o custom_n foreign_a law_n prescription_n &c_n &c_n notwithstanding_o be_v utter_o useless_a because_o no_o foreign_a law_n or_o prescription_n deny_v this_o authority_n to_o king_n to_o reform_v error_n &c_n &c_n in_o their_o dominion_n so_o that_o they_o still_o confine_v themselves_o to_o the_o precedent_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n three_o in_o the_o act_n forequote_v 25._o hen._n 8.19_o c._n it_o be_v grant_v to_o his_o highness_n and_o thirty_o two_o commissioner_n elect_v by_o he_o to_o annul_v and_o make_v invalid_a what_o former_a synodal_n canon_n they_o think_v not_o to_o stand_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n therefore_o they_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v which_o canon_n be_v such_o and_o to_o reform_v they_o i._n e_o to_o teach_v and_o declare_v the_o contrary_a truth_n to_o they_o when_o thought_n by_o they_o error_n against_o the_o judgement_n of_o former_a synod_n and_o without_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o new_a synod_n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o judge_v and_o pronounce_v de_fw-fr novo_fw-la what_o be_v error_n and_o heresy_n enormity_n abuse_n &_o c_o four_o last_o how_o come_v the_o king_n or_o his_o commissioner_n to_o be_v make_v the_o ultimate_a judge_n see_v before_o §_o 31.25_o hen._n 8.19_o c._n in_o all_o appeal_v touch_v divine_a matter_n if_o he_o or_o they_o can_v judge_v in_o these_o what_o be_v error_n since_o some_o cause_n and_o controversy_n may_v haply_o come_v before_o he_o not_o determine_v by_o former_a council_n and_o for_o the_o error_n he_o reform_v if_o he_o be_v still_o to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o his_o clergy_n what_o be_v such_o error_n how_o be_v there_o in_o these_o thing_n appeal_v admit_v to_o he_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o clergy_n §_o 36_o this_o say_v to_o remove_v the_o misinterpretation_n of_o that_o act_n i_o will_v add_v to_o these_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o i_o have_v be_v recite_v to_o you_o from_o §_o 26._o those_o word_n in_o the_o king_n last_o speech_n which_o he_o make_v in_o parliament_n not_o long_o before_o his_o death_n reprehend_v his_o subject_n for_o their_o great_a dissension_n in_o opinion_n and_o doctrine_n if_o you_o know_v sure_o say_v he_o that_o a_o bishop_n or_o preacher_n err_v or_o teach_v perverse_a doctrine_n 536._o lord._n herb._n hist_o p._n 536._o come_v and_o declare_v it_o to_o some_o of_o our_o council_n or_o to_o we_o to_o who_o be_v commit_v by_o god_n the_o high_a authority_n to_o reform_v and_o order_v such_o cause_n and_o behaviour_n and_o be_v not_o judge_n yourselves_o of_o your_o fantastical_a opinion_n and_o vain_a exposition_n here_o make_v his_o council_n or_o himself_o judge_v of_o the_o bishop_n doctrine_n and_o those_o word_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eighth_n proclamation_n 1543._o make_v for_o the_o eat_n of_o white-meat_n milk_n butter_n egg_n heese_n in_o lent_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o mere_a positive_a law_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v upon_o consideration_n and_o ground_n alter_v and_o dispense_v with_o by_o the_o public_a authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n 1104._o in_o fox_n pag._n 1104._o whensoever_o they_o shall_v perceive_v the_o same_o to_o tend_v to_o the_o hurt_n and_o damage_n of_o their_o people_n unless_o perhaps_o he_o restrain_v damage_n here_o to_o civil_a affair_n contrary_n to_o the_o eight_o thesis_n and_o those_o word_n in_o cromwell_n speech_n when_o he_o preside_v as_o the_o king_n vicar-general_n over_o the_o clergy_n assemble_v to_o state_n something_o in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n than_o agitate_a betwixt_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o lutheran_n who_o tell_v they_o that_o his_o majesty_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v wrest_v and_o deface_v by_o any_o gloss_n 1078._o fox_n p._n 1078._o any_o papistical_a law_n or_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o doctor_n or_o council_n by_o which_o if_o this_o be_v mean_v that_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n according_a to_o those_o determination_n and_o exposition_n which_o lawful_a council_n have_v make_v of_o they_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o four_o and_o seven_o thesis_n and_o overthrow_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n see_v the_o same_o thing_n say_v on_o the_o king_n behalf_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n against_o other_o bishop_n urge_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n 1079._o fox_n p._n 1079._o i_o will_v conclude_v with_o what_o bishop_n carleton_n in_o jurisdict_n regal_a and_o episcopal_a epist_n dedicat_fw-la §_o 37_o and_o calvin_n upon_o those_o word_n in_o amos_n 7.13_o prophecy_n not_o any_o more_o at_o bethel_n for_o it_o be_v the_o king_n court_n say_v of_o these_o time_n bishop_n carleton_n relate_v out_o of_o calvin_n that_o stephen_n gardiner_n bishop_n of_o winchester_z be_v at_o ratisbon_n in_o germany_n upon_o the_o king_n affair_n and_o there_o take_v occasion_n to_o declare_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o title_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n give_v to_o henry_n the_o eight_o teach_v that_o the_o king_n have_v such_o a_o power_n that_o he_o may_v appoint_v and_o prescribe_v new_a ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n even_o matter_n concern_v faith_n and_o doctrine_n and_o abolish_v old_a as_o namely_o '_o that_o the_o king_n may_v forbid_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o may_v take_v away_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o in_o such_o thing_n may_v appoint_v what_o he_o listen_v and_o there_o likewise_o bishop_n carleton_n confess_v that_o when_o henry_n the_o eight_o take_v this_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n &c_n &c_n though_o the_o sound_a and_o more_o judicious_a part_n of_o the_o church_n then_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o that_o title_n so_o as_o that_o no_o offence_n may_v just_o rise_v by_o it_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v in_o that_o sense_n as_o himself_o take_v it_o which_o be_v for_o the_o king_n to_o have_v a_o jurisdiction_n coactive_a in_o external_n court_v bind_v and_o compel_v man_n by_o force_n of_o law_n and_o other_o external_n mulct_n and_o punishment_n to_o what_o the_o church_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n define_v for_o this_o bishop_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o such_o matter_n see_v before_o p._n 4._o and_o in_o his_o whole_a book_n write_v purposely_o on_o this_o subject_a i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o he_o give_v the_o king_n any_o coactive_a authority_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n against_o any_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o say_v he_o they_o that_o be_v sudden_o bring_v from_o their_o old_a opinion_n of_o popery_n not_o to_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o to_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o king_n religion_n receive_v a_o gross_a and_o impure_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n but_o this_o gross_a sense_n be_v such_o as_o bishop_n gardiner_z
a_o lay_v vicar-general_n and_o p._n 20_o that_o the_o power_n and_o reputation_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v under_o foot_n and_o therefore_o the_o authority_n of_o parliament_n of_o more_o use_n than_o afterward_o in_o time_n well_o balance_v and_o establish_v mean_v those_o follow_a time_n wherein_o the_o clergy_n be_v now_o change_v and_o fashion_v to_o the_o inclination_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o as_o for_o these_o day_n of_o king_n edward_n what_o authority_n concern_v spiritual_a matter_n not_o only_o the_o people_n but_o the_o new_a divine_n of_o edward_n acknowledge_v and_o enstate_v in_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n may_v appear_v from_o that_o letter_n of_o bishop_n hooper_n when_o in_o prison_n send_v to_o the_o synod_n call_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n mary_n episcopis_fw-la decanis_n wherein_o he_o cite_v they_o before_o the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n 1933._o ●ox_n p._n 1933._o as_o the_o competent_a judge_n in_o those_o controversy_n i._n e_o for_o so_o far_o as_o any_o man_n can_v be_v judge_n in_o this_o letter_n after_o have_v urge_v deut._n 17.8_o because_o of_o the_o mention_n make_v there_o of_o a_o judge_n beside_o the_o priest_n vo●_n omnes_fw-la say_v he_o obtestor_n ut_fw-la causam_fw-la hanc_fw-la vel_fw-la aliam_fw-la quamcunqne_fw-la ob_fw-la religionem_fw-la ortam_fw-la inter_fw-la nos_fw-la &_o vos_fw-la defer_v dignemini_fw-la ad_fw-la supremam_fw-la curiam_fw-la parliamenti_fw-la ut_fw-la ibi_fw-la utraque_fw-la pars_fw-la coram_fw-la sacro_fw-la &_o excelso_fw-la senatu_fw-la seize_v religiosè_fw-la &_o animo_fw-la submisso_fw-la judicio_fw-la &_o authoritati_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la subjiciat_fw-la vestra_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la causa_fw-la certè_fw-la postulat_fw-la ut_fw-la palam_fw-la e._n c_o light_n inter_fw-la nos_fw-la componantur_fw-la idque_fw-la coram_fw-la competenti_fw-la judice_fw-la quid_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la igitur_fw-la quo_fw-la jure_fw-la contenditis_fw-la vultis_fw-la &_o nostri_fw-la &_o causae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la testes_fw-la accusatores_fw-la &_o judices_fw-la esse_fw-la nos_fw-la tantùm_fw-la legem_fw-la &_o evangelium_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o causà_fw-la religionis_fw-la judicem_fw-la competentem_fw-la agnoscimus_fw-la illius_fw-la judicio_fw-la stet_fw-la vel_fw-la cadat_fw-la nostra_fw-la causa_fw-la tantum_n iterum_fw-la atque_fw-la iterum_fw-la petimus_fw-la ut_fw-la coram_fw-la competenti_fw-la judice_fw-la detur_fw-la nobis_fw-la amicum_fw-la christianumque_fw-la auditorium_fw-la non_fw-fr vos_fw-fr fugit_fw-la quomodo_fw-la publicè_fw-la palam_fw-la &_o in_o fancy_n ac_fw-la in_o presentiâ_fw-la omnium_fw-la statuum_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la in_fw-la summâ_fw-la curià_fw-la parliamenti_fw-la veritas_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la per_fw-la fidos_fw-la doctos_fw-la &_o pios_fw-la ministros_fw-la de_fw-la vestrâ_fw-la impiâ_fw-la missâ_fw-la gloriosè_fw-la victoriam_fw-la reportavit_fw-la quae_fw-la quocunque_fw-la titulo_fw-la tempore_fw-la universalitate_fw-la splenduit_fw-la ubi_fw-la per_fw-la sanctissimum_fw-la regem_fw-la edvardum_fw-la 6._o ad_fw-la vivum_fw-la lapidem_fw-la lydium_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la examinari_fw-la per_fw-la proceres_fw-la heroas_fw-la ac_fw-la doctos_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la erat_fw-la mandatum_fw-la statim_fw-la evanuit_fw-la etc._n etc._n here_o that_o bishop_n profess_v when_o any_o do_v oppose_v a_o synod_n in_o a_o cause_n of_o religion_n not_o the_o synod_n but_o the_o parliament_n the_o competent_a judge_n therein_o and_o urge_v if_o i_o right_o understand_v he_o the_o just_a authority_n thereof_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n for_o put_v down_o the_o mass_n will_v he_o then_o stand_v to_o the_o parliament_n judgement_n which_o as_o it_o be_v then_o affect_v will_v have_v cast_v he_o it_o seem_v not_o by_o that_o he_o faith_n tantum_n legem_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o causâ_fw-la religionis_fw-la judicem_fw-la competentem_fw-la agnoscimus_fw-la illius_fw-la judicio_fw-la stet_fw-la vel_fw-la cadat_fw-la causa_fw-la nostra_fw-la by_o who_o mouth_n then_o shall_v the_o scripture_n decide_v it_o that_o sentence_n may_v be_v execute_v according_o on_o he_o a_o prisoner_n for_o this_o controversy_n by_o the_o clergy_n no._n by_o the_o parliament's_n no_o for_o he_o make_v sure_a to_o wave_v that_o in_o his_o letter_n by_o the_o scripture_n then_o its_o self_n but_o this_o be_v urge_v by_o both_o side_n to_o speak_v for_o they_o and_o say_v not_o one_o word_n more_o after_o the_o cause_n hear_v by_o the_o parliament_n than_o it_o do_v before_o so_o that_o in_o nominate_v no_o other_o final_a judge_n the_o bishop_n request_v here_o in_o sum_n be_v that_o his_o cause_n may_v never_o be_v try_v by_o any_o judge_n chap._n v._o king_n edward_n supremacy_n disclaim_v by_o qu._n mary_n §_o 48_o after_o king_n edward_n death_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n mary_n reign_n a_o princess_n otherwise_o principled_a re-acknowledged_n the_o former_a supremacy_n disclaim_v by_o q._n mary_n and_o by_o the_o bishop_n in_o her_o day_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n re-acknowledged_n all_o that_o have_v be_v do_v in_o the_o two_o former_a king_n reign_v by_o prince_n by_o state_n or_o by_o clergy_n in_o set_v up_o a_o new_a lay-supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n in_o restrain_v the_o former_a power_n and_o supremacy_n of_o the_o church_n in_o innovate_a the_o form_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o ordination_n of_o church_n rite_n and_o discipline_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o disannul_v several_a former_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n and_o constitution_n and_o compose_v new_a one_o all_o be_v now_o by_o a_o equal_a authority_n of_o prince_n clergy_n and_o state_n reverse_v repeal_v eject_v and_o religion_n only_o render_v much_o poor_a as_o for_o temporal_n put_v into_o the_o same_o course_n which_o it_o have_v in_o the_o twenty_o year_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o before_o a_o new_a wife_n or_o a_o new_a title_n be_v by_o he_o think_v on_o so_o that_o any_o new_a reformation_n to_o come_v afterward_o must_v begin_v to_o build_v clear_o upon_o a_o new_a foundation_n not_o able_a to_o make_v any_o use_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o former_a structure_n be_v now_o by_o the_o like_a authority_n deface_v and_o throw_v down_o §_o 49_o this_o restitution_n of_o thing_n make_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n will_v chief_o appear_v to_o you_o in_o the_o statute_n 1._o mar._n 2._o chap_n where_o the_o ancient_a form_n of_o divine_a service_n &c_n &c_n use_v in_o henry_n the_o eighths_n day_n be_v restore_v as_o be_v the_o service_n say_v the_o act_n which_o we_o and_o our_o forefather_n find_v in_o this_o church_n of_o england_n leave_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n church_n and_o the_o final_a judgement_n of_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n restore_v to_o the_o church_n and_o several_a act_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o edward_n the_o six_o that_o abrogate_a some_o former_a ecclesiastical_a law_n &c_n &c_n or_o introduce_v new_a form_n of_o divine_a service_n of_o election_n and_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v repeal_v and_o in_o 1_o and_o 2._o mar._n 6._o chap._n where_o the_o ancient_a way_n of_o judge_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n first_o at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n again_o and_o the_o statute_n to_o this_o purpose_n which_o be_v repeal_v upon_o the_o come_n in_o of_o a_o new_a supremacy_n be_v revive_v §_o 50_o and_o in_o 1_o and_o 2._o mar._n 8._o c_o where_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v re-acknowledged_n when_o also_o as_o fox_n observe_v p._n 1296._o the_o queen_n style_n concern_v supremacy_n be_v change_v and_o in_o it_o ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n supremum_fw-la caput_fw-la omit_v as_o also_o bonner_n bishop_n of_o london_n be_v chief_a of_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n in_o the_o restraint_n of_o the_o archbishop_n do_v omit_v in_o his_o writ_n to_o the_o clergy_n authoritate_fw-la illustrissimae_fw-la &c_n &c_n legitime_fw-la suffulttus_fw-la in_o which_o statute_n also_o the_o whole_a nation_n by_o their_o representative_a in_o parliament_n ask_v pardon_n and_o absolution_n from_o their_o former_a schism_n repeal_n the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o all_o the_o act_n make_v former_o in_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o edward_n the_o sixth_n time_n against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o among_o they_o particular_o this_o act_n of_o the_o submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n set_v down_o before_o §_o 22._o and_o §_o 23_o whereby_o the_o clergy_n have_v engage_v themselves_o to_o make_v nor_o promulge_v no_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n without_o the_o king_n consent_n and_o bad_a also_o beseech_v the_o king_n to_o delegate_v some_o person_n who_o he_o please_v to_o reform_v error_n heresy_n &c_n &c_n ay_o e._n to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o which_o statute_n also_o the_o clergy_n in_o a_o distinct_a supplication_n beginning_n nos_fw-la episcopi_fw-la &_o clerus_fw-la cantuariensis_n provinciae_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la synodo_fw-la congregati_fw-la &c_n &c_n call_v the_o former_a reformation_n perniciosum_fw-la schisma_fw-la do_v petition_n to_o have_v the_o church_n restore_v to_o her_o former_a right_n jurisdiction_n liberty_n take_v from_o she_o by_o the_o injustice_n of_o former_a time_n the_o word_n be_v insuper_fw-la majestatibus_fw-la vestris_fw-la supplicamus_fw-la
§_o 70._o and_o see_v the_o reason_n give_v by_o dr._n heylin_n why_o parliament_n which_o in_o former_a age_n abstain_v from_o they_o in_o this_o age_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o begin_v to_o intermeddle_v in_o state_v of_o matter_n of_o religion_n namely_o this_o reason_n a_o new_a supreme_a in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n then_o set_v up_o engl._n reform_v justify_v p._n 41._o where_o he_o first_o relate_v out_o of_o walsingham_n how_o long_a since_o wickleff_n have_v many_o doctrine_n strange_a and_o new_a which_o he_o desire_v to_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o see_v he_o can_v not_o authorise_v they_o in_o a_o regular_a way_n address_v his_o petition_n to_o the_o parliament_n lay_v this_o down_o for_o a_o position_n that_o the_o parliament_n may_v lawful_o examine_v and_o reform_v the_o disorder_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o a_o discovery_n of_o the_o error_n and_o corruption_n of_o it_o divest_v she_o of_o all_o tithe_n and_o temporal_a endowment_n till_o she_o be_v reform_v but_o neither_o his_o petition_n nor_o position_n say_v he_o find_v any_o welcome_n in_o that_o parliament_n be_v then_o he_o go_v on_o thus_o to_o say_v truth_n as_o long_o as_o the_o clergy_n be_v in_o power_n and_o have_v authority_n in_o convocation_n to_o do_v what_o they_o will_v in_o matter_n which_o concern_v religion_n those_o of_o the_o parliament_n conceive_v it_o neither_o safe_a nor_o fit_v to_o intermeddle_v in_o such_o business_n as_o concern_v the_o clergy_n for_o sear_v of_o be_v question_v for_o it_o at_o the_o church_n bar_n the_o church_n be_v then_o conceive_v to_o have_v the_o just_a supremacy_n herein_o but_o when_o that_o power_n be_v lessen_v though_o it_o be_v not_o lose_v by_o the_o submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o kings_n supremacy_n in_a matter_n of_o religion_n which_o ensue_v upon_o it_o then_o do_v the_o parliament_n begin_v to_o entrench_v upon_o the_o church_n right_n to_o offer_v at_o and_o entertain_v such_o business_n as_o former_o be_v hold_v peculiar_a to_o the_o clergy_n only_o next_o to_o dispute_v their_o charter_n and_o reverse_v their_o privilege_n and_o final_o to_o impose_v many_o hard_a law_n upon_o they_o thus_o he_o which_o example_n of_o the_o parliament_n meddle_v with_o opinion_n and_o state_v of_o heresy_n thus_o begin_v under_o henry_n the_o eighth_n church_n supremacy_n have_v make_v some_o parliament_n since_o also_o so_o active_a with_o the_o assistance_n of_o some_o person_n select_v by_o they_o out_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o same_o inclination_n in_o alter_v model_a establish_v a_o orthodox_n religion_n and_o have_v embolden_v mr._n prinn_n see_v heylin_n p._n 27._o to_o affirm_v it_o a_o ancient_a genuine_a just_a and_o lawful_a prerogation_n thereof_o to_o establish_v true_a religion_n in_o this_o church_n by_o which_o establish_v if_o mr._n prin_fw-mi mean_n not_o judge_v of_o truth_n and_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n but_o only_o require_v obedience_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v willing_o grant_v to_o be_v a_o establish_n due_o belong_v to_o that_o supreme_a court._n §_o 83_o i_o have_v dwell_v the_o long_a on_o the_o instance_n foreman_n tion_v suprenacy_n where_o codeer_n the_o complaint_n make_v by_o p●testaats_n of_o his_o abuse_n of_o the_o suprenacy_n that_o you_o may_v see_v when_o a_o prince_n together_o with_o his_o particular_a clergy_n or_o rather_o who_o out_o of_o they_o he_o shall_v choose_v without_o these_o be_v link_v in_o a_o due_a subordination_n to_o the_o whole_a claim_v such_o a_o power_n of_o compose_v model_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o declare_v all_o those_o his_o subject_n heretic_n who_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o obey_v such_o his_o determination_n what_o danger_n what_o mutability_n christian_a religion_n incur_v in_o such_o a_o nation_n as_o often_o as_o this_o supreme_a and_o independent_a head_n be_v not_o every_o way_n orthodox_n and_o so_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o act_n of_o this_o new-sprung_a supremacy_n of_o henry_n that_o those_o who_o much_o please_v themselves_o in_o it_o whilst_o it_o run_v the_o course_n they_o will_v have_v it_o in_o abate_v the_o former_a power_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o throw_v down_o monastery_n religious_a vow_n relic_n image_n &c_n &c_n yet_o afterward_o lament_v it_o as_o much_o when_o necessity_n of_o the_o king_n compliance_n with_o foreign_a prince_n and_o the_o influence_n of_o new_a evil_a counsellor_n say_v fox_n p._n 1036._o make_v the_o same_o supremacy_n produce_v a_o contrary_a sort_n of_o fruit_n which_o they_o can_v not_o so_o easy_o digest_v i_o mean_v the_o six_o article_n here_o also_o pronounce_v heresy_n to_o the_o opposer_n and_o punish_v the_o same_o with_o fire_n and_o faggot_n and_o the_o prohibition_n and_o suppression_n of_o many_o godly_a book_n as_o mr._n fox_n call_v they_o but_o full_a of_o error_n and_o heresy_n as_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o this_o church_n and_o also_o as_o archbishop_n cranmer_n who_o declaration_n against_o they_o see_v in_o fox_n p._n 1136._o then_o judge_v they_o some_o of_o the_o content_n of_o which_o godly_a book_n as_o they_o be_v then_o collect_v by_o cranmer_n and_o other_o prelate_n you_o may_v see_v in_o fox_n ibid._n and_o the_o prohibit_v all_o woman_n artificer_n husbandman_n &c_n &c_n from_o read_v the_o scripture_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o §_o 84_o which_o supremacy_n so_o ill_o use_v as_o he_o think_v force_v from_o mr._n fox_n that_o sad_a complaint_n both_o in_o particular_a concern_v the_o king_n impose_v of_o the_o six_o article_n p._n 1037._o that_o although_o they_o contain_v manifest_a error_n heresy_n and_o absurdity_n against_o all_o scripture_n and_o learning_n whereby_o we_o may_v see_v how_o these_o supreme_a head_n also_o may_v deviate_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o commit_v the_o reformation_n of_o all_o error_n and_o heresy_n into_o their_o hand_n who_o by_o this_o power_n instead_o thereof_o may_v enjoin_v error_n and_o heresy_n and_o that_o even_o against_o all_o scripture_n and_o learning_n as_o henry_n the_o eight_o though_o a_o scholar_n be_v here_o suppose_a to_o have_v do_v and_o that_o even_o to_o pronounce_v those_o heretic_n that_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o such_o heresy_n he_o go_v on_o yet_o such_o be_v he_o miserable_a adversity_n of_o that_o time_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n yet_o king_n henry_n say_v the_o time_n be_v full_a of_o light_n that_o the_o simple_a cause_n of_o truth_n be_v utter_o forsake_v of_o all_o friend_n for_o every_o man_n see_v the_o king_n mind_n who_o be_v now_o the_o legislator_n in_o spiritual_n so_o full_o addict_v upon_o politic_a respect_n to_o have_v these_o article_n to_o pass_v forward_o few_o or_o none_o in_o that_o parliament_n will_v appear_v who_o either_o can_v perceive_v that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v defend_v or_o dare_v defend_v that_o they_o understand_v to_o be_v true_a and_o also_o in_o general_a concern_v that_o king_n manage_v his_o supremacy_n p._n 1036._o from_o which_o posterity_n may_v have_v learn_v some_o wisdom_n to_o many_o say_v he_o who_o be_v yet_o alive_a and_o can_v testify_v these_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o unknown_a how_o variable_a the_o state_n of_o religion_n stand_v in_o these_o day_n how_o hardly_o and_o with_o what_o difficulty_n it_o come_v forth_o what_o chance_n and_o change_v it_o suffer_v even_o as_o the_o king_n be_v rule_v and_o give_v ear_n sometime_o to_o one_o sometime_o to_o another_o so_o one_o while_o it_o go_v forward_o at_o another_o season_n as_o much_o backward_a again_o and_o sometime_o clean_o alter_v and_o change_v for_o a_o season_n according_a as_o they_o can_v prevail_v who_o be_v about_o the_o king_n so_o long_o as_o queen_n anne_n live_v the_o gospel_n have_v indifferent_a success_n here_o then_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v direct_v by_o a_o woman_n and_o manage_v the_o affair_n of_o religion_n according_o after_o that_o she_o by_o sinister_a instigation_n of_o some_o about_o the_o king_n be_v make_v away_o the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n begin_v again_o to_o decline_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n stir_v open_fw-mi the_o lord_n cromwell_n opportune_o to_o help_v in_o that_o behalf_n who_o do_v much_o avail_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n true_a religion_n here_o then_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v direct_v by_o a_o laic_a and_o manage_v religion_n according_o and_o much_o more_o have_v he_o bring_v to_o perfection_n if_o the_o pestilent_a adversary_n malign_v the_o prosperous_a glory_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o supplant_v his_o virtuous_a proceed_n mr._n fox_n name_v not_o cranmer_n among_o these_o worthy_n because_o he_o be_v a_o agent_n in_o many_o of_o those_o proceed_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o which_o
more_o dignify_v and_o powerful_a among_o the_o religious_a be_v acquaint_v what_o penalty_n they_o have_v incur_v and_o have_v see_v already_o inflict_v on_o other_o and_o that_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a head_n of_o this_o church_n may_v also_o depose_v their_o society_n alienate_v and_o dispose_v of_o their_o estate_n as_o he_o see_v sit_v to_o those_o who_o will_v serve_v god_n better_o but_o that_o they_o may_v one_o way_n soon_o obtain_v both_o security_n and_o pardon_n for_o their_o past_a fault_n and_o provision_n for_o their_o future_a livelihood_n if_o they_o will_v rather_o preventive_o resign_v their_o foundation_n and_o possession_n into_o the_o king_n hand_n then_o stay_v to_o have_v they_o by_o his_o just_a power_n take_v from_o they_o especial_o since_o the_o king_n on_o such_o condition_n will_v either_o to_o the_o present_a incumbent_n give_v other_o preferment_n or_o allow_v considerable_a pension_n equal_v their_o former_a income_n to_o the_o unpreferred_a for_o their_o life_n and_o thus_o many_o if_o not_o all_o of_o these_o great_a foundation_n have_v see_v already_o the_o lesser_a seize_v on_o some_o person_n have_v fair_a hope_n of_o be_v well_o provide_v for_o other_o of_o impunity_n other_o also_o desire_v more_o liberty_n and_o weary_a of_o the_o fetter_n of_o a_o cloister_a life_n especial_o as_o restrain_v by_o the_o new_a regal_a injunction_n giveup_a and_o make-ove_a their_o monastery_n and_o all_o the_o estate_n belong_v thereto_o under_o their_o hand_n and_o seal_n to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n for_o ever_o and_o the_o king_n again_o return_v yearly_o a_o vast_a sum_n of_o money_n in_o pension_n bestow_v on_o the_o more_o eminent_a of_o the_o monastic_o for_o term_n of_o life_n a_o many_o of_o which_o pension_n you_o may_v see_v set_v down_o in_o mr._n fuller_n 6._o l._n p._n 304._o who_o also_o ibid._n p._n 316._o make_v this_o relation_n how_o the_o monk_n be_v tempt_v with_o they_o it_o be_v also_o press_v upon_o the_o monk_n friar_n and_o nun_n that_o they_o through_o their_o viciousness_n be_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o king_n anger_n this_o i._n e._n the_o take_v away_o of_o their_o estate_n may_v and_o will_v be_v do_v without_o their_o consent_n so_o that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o they_o rebus_fw-la sic_fw-la stantibus_fw-la to_o make_v a_o virtue_n of_o necessity_n the_o rather_o because_o this_o compliment_n conduce_v nothing_o to_o the_o king_n right_o on_o who_o the_o parliament_n have_v already_o bestow_v those_o abbey-land_n but_o may_v add_v much_o to_o their_o own_o advantage_n as_o be_v the_o way_n whereby_o their_o pension_n may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o procure_v large_o allot_v and_o sure_o pay_v unto_o they_o thus_o he._n and_o thus_o the_o lord_n herb._n p._n 442._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n cromwell_n betwixt_o threat_n gift_n persuasion_n promise_n and_o whatsoever_o may_v make_v man_n obnoxious_a obtain_v of_o the_o abbot_n prior_n abbess_n &c_n &c_n that_o their_o house_n may_v be_v give_v up_o among_o which_o those_o that_o offer_v their_o monastery_n free_o get_v best_a condition_n of_o the_o king_n for_o if_o they_o stand_v upon_o their_o right_n the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o some_o other_o statute_n and_o injunction_n bring_v they_o in_o danger_n or_o their_o crime_n at_o least_o make_v they_o guilty_a of_o the_o law_n which_o also_o be_v quick_o execute_v and_o particular_o on_o the_o abbot_n of_o glassenbury_n colchester_n and_o read_v who_o more_o than_o any_o else_o resist_v §_o 92_o when_o these_o land_n also_o be_v disperse_v and_o disposed-of_a and_o this_o great_a income_n spend_v the_o king_n necessity_n be_v no_o less_o argent_a upon_o he_o than_o former_o nay_o more_o he_o have_v late_o engage_v a_o war_n with_o france_n and_o scotland_n the_o glean_n as_o it_o be_v of_o this_o harvest_n which_o before_o lay_v unregarded_a be_v now_o look_v after_o and_o all_o the_o chauntery_n free-chappels_a college_n except_o the_o university_n fraternity_n &c_n &c_n dedicate_v also_o to_o such_o pious_a use_n as_o neither_o the_o king_n nor_o parliament_n of_o that_o time_n disallow_v viz._n offer_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n distribute_v alm_n and_o say_v prayer_n for_o the_o faithful_a decease_a as_o likewise_o the_o advance_n of_o learning_n sustenance_n of_o the_o poor_a &c_n &c_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o king_n lap_n upon_o pretence_n of_o abuse_n find_v in_o these_o too_o for_o which_o see_v statute_n 37_o hen._n 8.4_o c._n where_o the_o reason_n of_o give_v they_o away_o to_o the_o king_n and_o frustrate_v the_o use_n for_o which_o they_o be_v found_v be_v lest_o the_o priest_n or_o governor_n that_o enjoy_v they_o shall_v sell_v they_o away_o and_o frustrate_v the_o same_o use_n as_o some_o have_v do_v already_o probable_o for_o prevention_n of_o the_o storm_n they_o see_v come_v upon_o these_o after_o the_o monastery_n as_o if_o such_o fault_n of_o the_o incumbent_n be_v capable_a of_o no_o other_o cure_n nor_o these_o land_n preservable_a by_o law_n to_o the_o founder_n intention_n §_o 93_o now_o to_o reflect_v a_o little_a on_o these_o add_v of_o king_n henry_n so_o odious_a to_o the_o memory_n of_o posterity_n pre●eaces_n reflection_n upon_o these_o pre●eaces_n in_o they_o he_o seem_v many_o way_n void_a of_o excuse_n for_o 1._o first_o for_o the_o king_n necessity_n many_o of_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v faulty_o contract_v 1._o 1._o by_o to_o say_v no_o worse_o needless_a expense_n and_o because_o this_o hie-spirited_a and_o valiant_a prince_n will_v needs_o engage_v himself_o as_o lord_n herb._n p._n 511._o judicious_o observe_v beyond_o what_o be_v requisite_a and_o will_v be_v a_o actor_n for_o the_o most_o part_n where_o he_o need_v only_o to_o have_v be_v a_o spectator_n and_o methinks_v these_o thing_n do_v not_o suit_v well_o together_o to_o pull_v down_o religious_a house_n for_o mere_a necessity_n 513._o herbert_n p._n 513._o and_o in_o such_o expedition_n to_o cross_v the_o sea_n in_o a_o ship_n trim_v with_o sail_n of_o cloth_n of_o gold_n §_o 94_o second_o for_o the_o precedent_n of_o cardinal_n wolsey_n 1._o 2._o 2._o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o it_o but_o what_o be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n it_o be_v lawful_a in_o some_o case_n and_o on_o some_o condition_n for_o the_o supreme_a governor_n among_o churchman_n to_o alienate_v or_o rather_o to_o transfer_v from_o one_o pious_a use_n to_o another_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v give_v to_o they_o or_o be_v give_v to_o god_n be_v in_o his_o right_n possess_v by_o they_o as_o his_o minister_n but_o hence_o will_v it_o riot_n follow_v that_o any_o lay_v though_o the_o sovereign_n power_n who_o be_v not_o the_o receiver_n or_o possessor_n of_o such_o a_o gift_n but_o rather_o the_o donor_n for_o without_o the_o king_n consent_n the_o church_n receive_v no_o such_o gift_n can_v afterward_o resume_v from_o god_n and_o the_o church_n the_o disposal_n of_o it_o here_o i_o may_v say_v as_o st._n peter_n act_v 5._o 4._o before_o it_o be_v so_o bestow_v by_o he_o be_v it_o not_o his_o own_o but_o once_o so_o pass_v away_o and_o his_o mort-main_a allow_v to_o it_o it_o can_v then_o be_v recall_v upon_o any_o secular_a title_n but_o second_o suppose_v the_o king_n heir_n to_o all_o that_o supremacy_n which_o in_o these_o matter_n the_o pope_n or_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v former_o exercise_v yet_o this_o power_n will_v not_o extend_v to_o that_o which_o the_o king_n assume_v for_o the_o pope_n pretend_v to_o no_o such_o power_n as_o to_o alienate_v the_o church_n revenue_n for_o to_o spend_v they_o himself_o or_o to_o dispose_v of_o they_o in_o what_o manner_n or_o to_o what_o person_n he_o please_v but_o only_o for_o some_o just_a cause_n i.e._n in_o a_o prudential_a arbitration_n for_o a_o equal_a or_o great_a benefit_n thence_o accrue_v to_o the_o church_n or_o christianity_n which_o also_o be_v observe_v in_o his_o concession_n of_o those_o to_o cardinal_n wolsey_n in_o a_o time_n when_o religious_a abound_v more_o than_o scholar_n and_o by_o that_o concession_n the_o church_n still_o enjoy_v they_o but_o whither_o henry_n the_o eighth_n abbey-land_n go_v and_o what_o use_v they_o have_v serve_v we_o all_o know_v and_o this_o some_o think_v to_o the_o enrich_n of_o few_o but_o ruin_n of_o many_o noble_a family_n in_o this_o nation_n see_v dr._n heylin_n hist_n of_o reform_v of_o qu._n mary_n p._n 45._o and_o p._n 67_o 68_o §_o 95_o three_o neither_o be_v the_o vice_n of_o those_o religious_a a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o overthrow_v their_o society_n and_o foundation_n 3._o 3._o because_o the_o king_n may_v have_v punish_v eject_v change_v the_o person_n without_o take_v away_o the_o house_n or_o maintenance_n as_o be_v frequent_o do_v in_o all_o society_n and_o particular_o in_o religious_a house_n abroad_o unless_o
we_o will_v say_v that_o the_o english_a only_o be_v in_o such_o fault_n incurable_a neither_o can_v it_o be_v plead_v that_o such_o land_n be_v give_v to_o pious_a use_n with_o such_o a_o tacit_n condition_n that_o when_o abuse_v they_o may_v be_v recall_v so_o long_o as_o these_o abuse_n be_v some_o other_o way_n remediable_a for_o else_o what_o thing_n be_v there_o dedicate_v to_o god_n service_n which_o some_o possessor_n do_v not_o at_o some_o time_n abuse_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o abuse_n and_o fault_n lie_v chief_o in_o the_o very_a institution_n and_o law_n themselves_o of_o such_o foundation_n yet_o be_v these_o law_n also_o capable_a of_o be_v rectify_v and_o reform_v so_o as_o god_n may_v be_v holy_o serve_v in_o such_o a_o monastic_a life_n as_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o say_v he_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n but_o if_o the_o monastic_a law_n here_o be_v so_o corrupt_a how_o come_v the_o very_a same_o law_n abroad_o not_o to_o produce_v the_o same_o fruit_n in_o nation_n say_v to_o be_v more_o incline_v to_o such_o vice_n how_o come_v those_o house_n there_o to_o this_o day_n to_o be_v not_o only_o tolerate_v but_o reverence_v or_o how_o happen_v under_o the_o same_o law_n here_o but_o three_o or_o four_o year_n before_o in_o the_o great_a monastery_n religion_n thanks_o be_v to_o god_n to_o be_v right_a well_o keep_v and_o observe_v stat._n 27._o hen._n 8.28_o c._n but_o suppose_v the_o king_n have_v question_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o these_o institution_n yet_o be_v he_o no_o competent_a judge_n thereof_o it_o be_v a_o theological_a controversy_n and_o decide_v on_o the_o other_o side_n by_o the_o lawful_a judge_n thereof_o in_o several_a superior_a council_n as_o be_v show_v in_o discourse_n of_o celibacy_n but_o indeed_o that_o which_o leave_v the_o king_n the_o more_o destitute_a of_o any_o apology_n in_o this_o kind_n be_v that_o whereas_o the_o chief_a fault_n charge_v upon_o these_o cloister_a people_n be_v incontinency_n the_o king_n whilst_o he_o take_v away_o these_o order_n do_v justify_v this_o vow_n at_o least_o of_o perpetual_a chastity_n to_o be_v a_o vow_n lawful_a and_o by_o every_o one_o observable_a as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o four_o of_o the_o six_o famous_a article_n and_o still_o do_v prohibit_v all_o such_o person_n as_o have_v take_v this_o vow_n when_o in_o monastery_n from_o marry_v afterward_o when_o they_o be_v eject_v condemn_v the_o transgressor_n hereof_o to_o suffer_v death_n the_o word_n of_o that_o four_o article_n be_v these_o that_o the_o vow_n of_o chastity_n or_o widowhood_n by_o man_n or_o woman_n make_v to_o god_n advise_o i._n e._n as_o i_o suppose_v deliberate_o or_o if_o you_o will_v with_o the_o approbation_n of_o our_o spiritual_a father_n aught_o to_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o exempt_v they_o from_o other_o liberty_n of_o christian_a people_n which_o without_o that_o vow_v they_o may_v enjoy_v the_o penalty_n of_o which_o article_n be_v that_o if_o any_o after_o a_o vow_n advise_o make_v do_v marry_v in_o so_o do_v he_o shall_v be_v adjudge_v as_o a_o felon_n and_o lose_v both_o life_n and_o forfeit_v good_n without_o any_o benefit_n of_o clergy_n see_v fox_n p._n 1037._o now_o if_o any_o can_v make_v this_o vow_n advise_o i_o see_v not_o how_o we_o can_v say_v that_o the_o monk_n do_v not_o so_o unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o any_o breach_n of_o a_o vow_n argue_v it_o not_o to_o have_v be_v former_o make_v with_o advice_n but_o then_o why_o be_v these_o religious_a express_o restrain_v afterward_o from_o marry_v stat._n 31._o hen._n 8.6_o c._n where_o also_o advise_o seem_v to_o be_v interpret_v the_o vow_v after_o one_o and_o twenty_o year_n old_a uncompelled_a as_o for_o the_o falsification_n of_o miracle_n to_o discover_v and_o publish_v the_o cheat_n be_v sufficient_a to_o cure_v the_o present_a fault_n and_o to_o prevent_v the_o like_a and_o when_o the_o image_n be_v take_v away_o the_o house_n need_v not_o to_o be_v pull_v down_o §_o 96_o and_o as_o unexcusable_a seem_v the_o king_n to_o be_v in_o take_v away_o chauntery_n &c_n &c_n give_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o faithful_a decease_v with_o some_o imperfection_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o annual_a alm_n and_o prayer_n offer_v to_o god_n for_o they_o whilst_o he_o allow_v a_o benefit_n in_o these_o thing_n and_o himself_o leave_v the_o like_a pension_n and_o order_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n of_o which_o he_o have_v deprive_v other_o decease_v shall_v be_v do_v for_o himself_o when_o decease_a as_o you_o may_v see_v at_o large_a in_o his_o will_n transcribe_v by_o mr._n fuller_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o edward_n the_o six_o have_v these_o thing_n give_v he_o again_o by_o parliament_n because_o henry_n the_o eight_o die_v not_o long_o after_o the_o donation_n upon_o this_o reason_n because_o the_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n and_o mass_n satisfactory_a to_o be_v do_v for_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v be_v vain_a and_o superstitious_a stat._n 1._o edw._n 6.14_o c._n yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o other_o cause_n and_o other_o grievance_n than_o these_o be_v glad_a to_o be_v invent_v to_o make_v way_n for_o king_n henry_n to_o lay_v hand_n on_o they_o stat._n 37._o hen._n 8.4_o c._n §_o 97_o four_o 4._o 4._o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o religious_a themselv_n voluntary_o resign_v these_o possession_n into_o the_o king_n hand_n see_v stat._n 31._o hen._n 8.13_o c._n yet_o be_v this_o act_n of_o they_o suppose_a never_o so_o free_a from_o compulsion_n invalid_a because_o they_o can_v not_o give_v away_o for_o ever_o what_o they_o have_v title_n to_o only_o for_o term_v of_o life_n neither_o yet_o can_v they_o alienate_v they_o for_o their_o life_n from_o that_o use_n to_o which_o they_o be_v dedicate_v without_o commit_v sacrilege_n §_o 98_o five_o last_o that_o which_o be_v say_v 5._o 5._o of_o a_o excessive_a number_n of_o they_o in_o this_o nation_n if_o it_o be_v a_o just_a apology_n for_o take_v away_o some_o the_o supernumerary_n yet_o will_v it_o be_v none_o for_o take_v away_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v concern_v their_o averseness_n to_o the_o king_n reformation_n be_v grant_v and_o show_v indeed_o that_o the_o demolish_n of_o they_o be_v to_o good_a purpose_n for_o attain_v the_o king_n end_n but_o it_o show_v not_o that_o the_o demolish_n therefore_o of_o they_o be_v lawful_a unless_o first_o such_o end_n be_v justifiable_a and_o second_o can_v otherwise_o be_v compass_v and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o king_n destroy_v monastery_n §_o 99_o by_o virtue_n of_o such_o a_o supremacy_n by_o which_o he_o be_v conceive_v to_o have_v power_n to_o dispense_v with_o any_o etc._n in_o the_o dispease_n with_o the_o former_a church_n canous_a conmarriage_n fast_n holiday_n etc._n etc._n if_o only_o humane_a though_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n see_v stat._n 25._o hen._n 8.21_o recite_v before_o §_o 27._o he_o make_v order_n and_o give_v dispensation_n in_o matter_n of_o marriage_n against_o the_o former_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n see_v stat._n 32._o hen._n 8.38_o c._n where_o it_o be_v say_v by_o this_o act_n we_o i._n e._n the_o king_n and_o parliament_n do_v declare_v all_o person_n to_o be_v lawful_a that_o be_v not_o prohibit_v by_o god_n law_n to_o marry_v of_o which_o licence_n say_v fuller_n chur._n hist_o 5._o l._n p._n 236._o the_o king_n himself_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n in_o marry_v katherine_n howard_n cosen-german_a to_o anne_n bullen_n his_o second_o wife_n and_n you_o may_v find_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o same_o act_n this_o urge_v also_o as_o a_o motive_n of_o cast_v off_o the_o pope_n usurp_a power_n in_o such_o matter_n that_o king_n henry_n be_v otherwise_o by_o learning_n teach_v than_o his_o predecessor_n in_o time_n past_o long_a time_n have_v be_v for_o king_n henry_n be_v design_v by_o his_o father_n for_o a_o churchman_n and_o during_o the_o life_n of_o his_o elder_a brother_n be_v educate_v in_o learning_n and_o not_o unstudy_v in_o school_n divinity_n lord_n herbert_n hist_n p._n 2._o therefore_o in_o the_o first_o article_n of_o religion_n which_o he_o put_v forth_o 1536_o which_o be_v devise_v by_o the_o king_n himself_o and_o so_o recommend_v to_o the_o convocation_n house_n by_o cromwell_n part_n of_o which_o house_n say_v lord_n herb._n p._n 405_o lean_v to_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n and_o rite_n he_o take_v pain_n to_o peruse_v and_o moderate_v their_o argument_n on_o either_o side_n add_v animadversion_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o record_n and_o in_o the_o second_o article_n of_o religion_n call_v a_o necessary_a doctrine_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n publish_v 1543._o he_o careful_o peruse_v they_o say_v
comment_n it_o be_v plain_a enough_o and_o perhaps_o posterity_n may_v have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v cover_v this_o nakedness_n of_o their_o forefather_n then_o to_o have_v publish_v it_o after_o so_o long_a a_o silence_n §_o 106_o down_o set_a down_o now_o to_o proceed_v etc._n 1._o first_o more_o general_o it_o put_v forth_o certain_a injunction_n and_o doctrinal_a honily_n send_v commissioner_n through_o the_o realm_n and_o eject_v the_o refractory_a clergy_n etc._n etc._n thus_o this_o young_a prince_n arm_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n with_o the_o title_n of_o supreme_a in_o church-affair_n and_o direct_v by_o such_o a_o council_n do_v set_v forth_o from_o time_n to_o time_n nothing_o be_v defer_v herein_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o nonage_n though_o this_o much_o sued-for_a by_o some_o bishop_n injunction_n concern_v religion_n and_o many_o of_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o these_o contrary_n to_o the_o determination_n and_o decree_n of_o former_a oblige_a council_n set_a they_o forth_o sometime_o with_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o this_o council_n sometime_o also_o with_o that_o of_o his_o parliament_n without_o any_o precedent_a consultation_n with_o or_o consent_v of_o i_o say_v not_o some_o particular_a bishop_n or_o divine_n most_o of_o they_o know_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o inclination_n with_o the_o council_n as_o chief_o cranmer_n and_o ridley_n to_o who_o i_o may_v add_v latimer_n hooper_n rogers_n coverdale_n but_o of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n of_o his_o clergy_n the_o act_n of_o which_o only_o have_v force_n in_o such_o matter_n and_o usual_o without_o the_o precedent_a consent_n of_o other_o bishop_n very_o considerable_a for_o their_o learning_n or_o place_n as_o gardiner_z bishop_n of_o winchester_n bonner_n bishop_n of_o london_n tonstal_v bishop_n of_o durham_n and_o one_o of_o the_o choose_a governor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n heath_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n and_o other_o and_o he_o impose_v the_o same_o injunction_n so_o set_v forth_o upon_o the_o bishop_n also_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o be_v submit_v to_o by_o they_o as_o be_v the_o order_n of_o their_o supreme_a head_n in_o spiritual_n upon_o penalty_n of_o suspension_n imprisonment_n deprivation_n §_o 107_o of_o which_o act_n of_o the_o king_n and_o state_n before_o we_o descend_v to_o particular_n hear_v what_o mr._n fox_n say_v in_o great_a applause_n of_o they_o p._n 1180_o where_o after_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o protector_n have_v restore_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o mother-tongue_n have_v extinguish_v and_o abolish_v mass_n and_o the_o six_o article_n after_o soft_a beginning_n say_v he_o by_o little_a and_o little_o great_a thing_n follow_v in_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o before_o be_v in_o banishment_n for_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v again_o receive_v in_o their_o country_n to_o supply_v void_v place_n and_o to_o be_v short_a say_v he_o a_o new_a face_n of_o thing_n begin_v now_o to_o appear_v as_o it_o be_v on_o a_o stage_n new_a player_n come_v in_o what_o need_v this_o if_o the_o old_a consent_v to_o the_o king_n mandate_n the_o old_a be_v thrust_v out_o therefore_o the_o consent_n of_o clergy_n so_o much_o urge_v in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n will_v be_v that_o of_o the_o new_a for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o bishop_n of_o church_n and_o diocese_n be_v change_v such_o as_o have_v be_v dumb_a prelate_n before_o be_v compel_v to_o give_v place_n to_o other_o then_o that_o will_v preach_v and_o take_v pain_n .._o beside_o other_o also_o out_o of_o foreign_a country_n which_o argue_v scarcity_n at_o home_n of_o these_o clergy_n who_o will_v second_v the_o king_n reformation_n man_n of_o learning_n and_o notable_a knowledge_n be_v send_v for_o and_o receive_v among_o who_o be_v peter_n martyr_n martin_n bucer_n and_o paulus_n phagius_n he_o may_v have_v add_v to_o they_o bernardinus_fw-la ochinus_n but_o that_o this_o man_n will_v do_v he_o no_o credit_n who_o we_o read_v in_o coodwin_n p._n 281._o be_v pack_v away_o again_o with_o peter_n martyr_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n mary_n be_v reign_v and_o three_o of_o these_o martyr_n bucer_n and_o ochinus_n be_v friar_n forsake_v the_o cloister_n and_o marry_v wife_n after_o solemn_a vow_n to_o the_o contrary_n of_o who_o say_v he_o the_o first_o teach_v at_o oxford_n the_o other_o two_o profess_a at_o cambridge_n sure_o this_o be_v so_o appoint_v not_o because_o the_o university_n here_o at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o hold_v so_o learned_a but_o because_o not_o account_v so_o orthodox_n as_o appear_v short_o after_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o queen_n mary_n notwithstanding_o martyr_n and_o bucer_n lecture_n there_o he_o add_v and_o that_o with_o no_o small_a commendation_n of_o the_o whole_a university_n and_o i_o put_v in_o not_o without_o opposition_n of_o many_o learned_a man_n there_o dispute_v ex_fw-la animo_fw-la before_o the_o king_n visitor_n against_o they_o and_o their_o tenant_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o solemn_a disputation_n have_v in_o cambridge_n fox_n p._n 1250._o etc._n etc._n where_o i_o will_v recommend_v to_o your_o read_n when_o at_o leisure_n the_o rational_a arguing_n and_o apology_n for_o the_o church_n doctrine_n of_o dr._n glyn_n and_o mr._n langdale_n and_o other_o member_n of_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n against_o this_o reform_a party_n and_o against_o the_o interlocution_n of_o bishop_n ridley_n one_o of_o the_o visitor_n as_o for_o the_o oxford_n opposition_n mr._n fox_n have_v not_o communicate_v they_o there_o be_v extant_a p._n martyr_n relation_n of_o they_o 1255._o fox_n p._n 1255._o perhaps_o not_o the_o most_o impartial_a yet_o wherein_o you_o may_v find_v in_o his_o opponent_n tresham_n chadsey_n and_o morgan_n much_o learning_n reverence_n to_o the_o church_n and_o zeal_n in_o their_o cause_n and_o as_o we_o may_v gather_v from_o his_o preface_n a_o conceive_a victory_n of_o who_o there_o he_o say_v omnes_fw-la anguli_fw-la plateae_fw-la domus_fw-la officinae_fw-la &_o aenopolia_fw-la adhuc_fw-la eorum_fw-la mentitos_fw-la triumphos_fw-la de_fw-la i_o &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d resonant_n by_o which_o you_o may_v guess_v how_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n then_o stand_v affect_v mr._n fox_n proceed_v of_o the_o old_a bishop_n some_o be_v commit_v to_o one_o ward_n some_o to_o another_o bonner_n bishop_n of_o london_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o marshal_n see_v gardener_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n with_o jonstal_n bishop_n of_o duresme_fw-fr be_v cast_v into_o the_o tower_n to_o who_o may_v be_v add_v 1280._o ●ox_n p._n 1280._o as_o appear_v out_o of_o fox_n elsewhere_o day_n remove_v from_o chicester_n heath_n from_o worcester_n vesy_n from_o excester_n likewise_o pate_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n goldwel_n bishop_n of_o st._n asaph_n bishop_n elect_v of_o bangor_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v banish_v and_o some_o more_o may_v be_v remove_v in_o like_a manner_n who_o happen_v not_o to_o be_v mention_v because_o decease_v before_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n as_o wakeman_n bishop_n of_o gloucester_n holbeck_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n skyp_v bishop_n of_o hereford_n rugg_n bishop_n of_o norwich_n as_o may_v be_v probable_o conjecture_v from_o mr._n fox_n his_o expression_n but_o now_o rehearse_v §_o 108_o after_o this_o mr._n fox_n go_v on_o to_o describe_v what_o course_n the_o king_n and_o that_o his_o council_n take_v in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o their_o power_n before_o any_o parliament_n of_o synod_n yet_o assemble_v to_o effect_v a_o reformation_n in_o the_o church_n the_o king_n say_v he_o follow_v the_o good_a example_n of_o king_n josias_n determine_v forthwith_o to_o enter_v into_o some_o reformation_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whereupon_o intend_v first_o a_o general_a visitation_n over_o all_o the_o bishopric_n thereby_o as_o well_o to_o understand_v as_o also_o to_o redress_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o same_o the_o choose_v out_o certain_a wife_n learned_a discreet_a and_o worshipful_a person_n to_o be_v his_o commissioner_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o so_o divide_v they_o into_o several_a company_n assign_v into_o they_o several_a diocese_n to_o be_v visit_v appoint_v likewise_o unto_o every_o company_n one_o or_o two_o godly_a learned_a preacher_n by_o which_o it_o seem_v the_o commissioner_n be_v laic_n unless_o we_o say_v they_o appoint_v some_o godly_a preacher_n to_o assist_v the_o divine_n see_v the_o name_n of_o those_o for_o the_o diocese_n of_o london_n fox_n p._n 1192._o which_o preacher_n at_o every_o session_n shall_v instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o dehort_v they_o from_o their_o old_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v more_o orderly_o direct_v in_o this_o their_o commission_n there_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o certain_a injuction_n and_o ecclesiastical_a order_n draw_v up_o by_o
be_v no_o small_a occasion_n of_o sorrow_n unto_o they_o to_o understand_v by_o the_o complaint_n of_o many_o that_o the_o say_a book_n so_o much_o travel_v for_o remain_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o realm_n either_o not_o know_v at_o all_o or_o not_o use_v or_o if_o use_v very_o seldom_o and_o that_o in_o such_o a_o light_n and_o irreverent_a sort_n that_o etc._n etc._n the_o fault_n whereof_o say_v they_n to_o the_o bishop_n we_o must_v of_o reason_n impute_v to_o you_o and_o other_o of_o your_o vocation_n and_o thus_o fox_n in_o the_o same_o page_n what_o zealous_a care_n be_v in_o this_o young_a king_n concern_v reformation_n by_o these_o injunction_n it_o may_v tight_o well_o appear_v whereby_o we_o have_v to_o note_v not_o so_o much_o the_o careful_a diligence_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o learned_a council_n as_o the_o linger_a slackness_n and_o draw_v back_o on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o divers_a but_o especial_o of_o bishop_n and_o old_a popish_a curate_n he_o mean_v the_o clergy_n such_o as_o have_v not_o be_v change_v by_o king_n edward_n by_o who_o cloak_a contempt_n wilful_a wink_n and_o stubborn_a disobedience_n the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n be_v long_o after_o the_o publish_n thereof_o either_o not_o know_v at_o all_o or_o else_o very_o irreverent_o use_v throughout_o many_o place_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v collect_v from_o the_o many_o rise_n in_o several_a county_n that_o be_v in_o king_n edward_n day_n chief_o for_o matter_n of_o religion_n first_o in_o somersetshire_n and_o lincolnshire_n then_o in_o essex_n kent_z suffolk_z norfolk_z cornwall_n and_o devon-shire_n and_o afterward_o also_o in_o york_n shire_n which_o rise_n of_o the_o laity_n in_o such_o number_n for_o their_o former_a way_n of_o religion_n will_v not_o have_v be_v have_v not_o their_o clergy_n justify_v it_o unto_o they_o §_o 123_o to_o these_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o add_v yet_o further_o the_o testimony_n of_o bishop_n ridley_n one_o who_o know_v well_o the_o pulse_n of_o those_o time_n in_o his_o treatise_n lament_v the_o state_n of_o england_n apud_fw-la fox_n p._n 1616._o even_o of_o the_o great_a magistrate_n say_v he_o some_o spurn_v privy_o and_o will_v not_o spare_v to_o speak_v evil_a of_o those_o preacher_n who_o go_v about_o most_o wholsome_o to_o cure_v their_o sore_a back_n as_o for_o the_o common_a fort_n of_o other_o inferior_a magistrate_n as_o judge_n &c_n &c_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v of_o they_o as_o of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o clergy_n parsons_n prebendary_n arch-deacon_n dean_n yea_o and_o i_o may_v say_v of_o bishop_n also_o i_o fear_v i_o for_o the_o most_o part_n although_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o god_n have_v and_o have_v ever_o who_o he_o in_o every_o state_n know_v to_o be_v his_o but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n i_o say_v they_o be_v never_o persuade_v in_o their_o heart_n but_o from_o the_o tooth_n forward_o and_o for_o the_o king_n sake_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n i._n e._n in_o the_o protestant_a tenant_n and_o yet_o all_o these_o do_v dissemble_v he_o mean_v many_o for_o of_o all_o it_o be_v not_o true_a see_v before_o §_o 107._o and_o bear_v a_o copy_n of_o a_o countenance_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v sound_a within_o hitherto_o bishop_n ridley_n where_o note_n that_o some_o outward_a compliance_n at_o the_o first_o of_o those_o bishop_n who_o make_v a_o open_a opposition_n afterward_o may_v be_v upon_o a_o fair_a pretence_n because_o the_o first_o act_n of_o the_o reformation_n may_v be_v not_o so_o unsupportable_a as_o the_o late_a for_o the_o reformation_n wind_v and_o insinuate_v itself_o into_o the_o common_a practice_n by_o certain_a gentle_a degree_n the_o great_a blow_n to_o the_o former_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n be_v give_v in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n when_o it_o be_v now_o by_o some_o success_n grow_v more_o bold_a and_o confident_a but_o however_o it_o be_v such_o compliance_n use_v for_o a_o while_n but_o after_o ward_v renounce_v do_v avail_v nothing_o the_o protestant_a cause_n since_o the_o late_a judgement_n in_o such_o matter_n be_v to_o be_v take_v especial_o where_o it_o be_v no_o way_n corrupt_v by_o but_o proceed_v against_o secular_a advantage_n again_o the_o perpetual_a outward_a compliance_n of_o some_o other_o bishop_n contrary_o affect_v since_o there_o precede_v before_o it_o penalty_n and_o fear_n and_o the_o see_v of_o the_o prime_a bishop_n to_o be_v imprison_v and_o eject_v for_o stand_v our_o be_v far_o from_o a_o authentical_a consent_n and_o unjust_o reckon_v as_o such_o for_o though_o none_o can_v know_v man_n heart_n but_o by_o their_o outward_a appearance_n yet_o where_o man_n vote_n be_v ask_v after_o penalty_n imprisonment_n of_o other_o threat_n which_o be_v so_o strong_a motive_n of_o dissimulation_n now_o all_o that_o conform_v in_o these_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v compiler_n and_o none_o free_a voter_n §_o 124_o this_o testimony_n of_o bishop_n ridley_n i_o will_v second_v with_o mr._n fuller_n chur._n hist._n 7._o l._n p._n 414._o we_o find_v say_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o time_n divide_v into_o three_o sort_n zealous_a protestant_n cranmer_n ridley_n hooper_n farrer_n etc._n etc._n but_o these_o name_n be_v make_v bishop_n or_o consecrate_a as_o ridley_n in_o king_n edward_n be_v time_n all_o save_o cranmer_n '_o zealous_a papist_n bonner_n gardiner_n tonstal_n he_o may_v have_v name_v so_o many_o of_o the_o rest_n as_o be_v then_o eject_v for_o their_o religion_n voicy_fw-fr heath_n day_n papist_n in_o their_o heart_n but_o outward_o conform_v to_o the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a laws_n as_o heath_n then_o bishop_n of_o worcester_n yet_o heath_n be_v eject_v and_o many_o other_o bishop_n among_o who_o elsewhere_o he_o number_v 11._o s._n l._n p._n 11._o samson_n bishop_n of_o coventry_n and_o lichfield_n of_o who_o godwin_n in_o catalogue_n of_o bishop_n say_v that_o he_o begin_v to_o show_v himself_o a_o papist_n in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o king_n edward_n and_o be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o presidentship_n of_o wales_n capon_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n thirlby_n bishop_n of_o norwich_n buck_o bishop_n of_o bangor_n add_v parfew_n bishop_n of_o asaph_n kitchen_n bishop_n of_o landaff_n aldrich_n bishop_n of_o carlisle_n goodrig_n bishop_n of_o ely_n chambers_z bishop_n of_o peterborough_n king_n bishop_n of_o oxford_n who_o all_o return_v to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o old_a religion_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n some_o of_o these_o forename_a fling_v up_o a_o good_a part_n of_o their_o land_n to_o keep_v their_o ground_n and_o comply_v with_o the_o king_n command_v so_o cold_o and_o with_o such_o reluctancy_n as_o lay_v they_o open_a to_o the_o spoil_n though_o not_o to_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o bishopric_n as_o dr._n heylin_n relate_v it_o in_o hist_o of_o reform_v p._n 100_o and_o here_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o enquiry_n say_v fuller_n why_o this_o late_a sort_n which_o so_o comply_v under_o king_n edward_n shall_v be_v so_o stubborn_a and_o obstinate_a under_o queen_n elizabeth_n whereof_o i_o can_v give_v but_o this_o reason_n assign_v that_o grow_v old_a and_o near_a their_o grave_n they_o grow_v more_o conscientious_a and_o faithful_a to_o their_o own_o though_o erroneous_a principle_n thus_o he_o i_o add_v to_o the_o open_a maintain_n of_o which_o principle_n their_o long_a experience_n have_v see_v the_o arbitrary_a and_o float_a state_n of_o religion_n under_o a_o secular_a supremacy_n in_o their_o old_a age_n excite_v they_o §_o 125_o last_o for_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n though_o many_o of_o they_o doubtless_o be_v change_v in_o king_n edward_n day_n yet_o so_o many_o of_o they_o then_o remain_v still_o of_o the_o old_a religion_n either_o in_o heart_n or_o also_o in_o profession_n that_o a_o synod_n be_v call_v within_o five_o or_o six_o day_n after_o queen_n mary_n coronation_n before_o any_o new_a mould_v of_o this_o ecclesiastical_a body_n all_o of_o they_o except_z six_z vote_v against_o king_n edward_n reformation_n see_v before_o §_o 51._o to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v the_o zeal_n and_o forwardness_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n at_o the_o same_o time_n prevent_v the_o queen_n edict_n in_o erect_v again_o the_o altar_n and_o use_v the_o mass_n and_o latin_a service_n &c._n &c._n of_o which_o see_v heylin_n hist_o q._n marry_o p._n 24._o all_o which_o can_v not_o have_v happen_v so_o soon_o after_o king_n edward_n death_n if_o during_o his_o life_n they_o have_v all_o so_o real_o and_o unanimous_o receive_v and_o observe_v it_o which_o reformation_n also_o the_o lady_n mary_n in_o her_o letter_n to_o the_o council_n who_o blame_v she_o for_o inconformity_n to_o the_o king_n law_n intimate_v that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v without_o partiality_n nor_o consent_v unto_o without_o
and_o form_n save_v that_o he_o shall_v bless_v and_o consecrate_v the_o big_a chalice_n or_o some_o fair_a and_o convenient_a cup_n or_o cup_n full_a of_o wine_n with_o some_o water_n put_v unto_o it_o and_o that_o day_n not_o drink_v it_o up_o all_o himself_o but_o take_v one_o only_o sup_v or_o draught_n leave_v the_o rest_n upon_o the_o altar_n cover_v and_o thus_o exhort_v the_o people_n dear_o belove_v etc._n etc._n thus_o the_o rubric_n and_o this_o form_n as_o mr._n fox_n go_v on_o exhabit_v unto_o the_o king_n be_v by_o his_o majesty_n council_n particular_o send_v to_o every_o bishop_n of_o the_o realm_n require_v and_o command_v they_o by_o their_o letter_n on_o the_o king_n majesty_n behalf_n that_o they_o shall_v forthwith_o have_v diligent_a respect_n to_o the_o due_a execution_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n in_o which_o letter_n the_o motive_n urge_v by_o the_o council_n why_o this_o new_a form_n be_v draw_v up_o and_o impose_v be_v that_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o former_a parliament_n order_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v distribute_v unto_o the_o people_n in_o both_o kind_n may_v be_v well_o execute_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o if_o for_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o alter_v or_o superad_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o mass_n when_o as_o with_o that_o same_o form_n of_o the_o mass_n it_o be_v in_o the_o public_a communion_n for_o many_o century_n only_o so_o distribute_v and_o when_o as_o that_o same_o form_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v urge_v by_o protestant_n as_o contrary_a to_o communicate_v the_o people_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n but_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o alter_v it_o i_o shall_v show_v you_o by_o and_o by_o now_o this_o new_a form_n be_v thus_o impose_v by_o the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n before_o allow_v by_o any_o synod_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o be_v procure_v afterward_o in_o the_o second_o parliament_n of_o king_n edward_n meanwhile_o such_o alteration_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n about_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v uncanonical_a so_o they_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n also_o very_o hurtful_a in_o that_o they_o occasion_v in_o the_o ignorant_a especial_o much_o profaneness_n and_o irreverence_n towards_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n in_o those_o day_n as_o you_o may_v partly_o also_o gather_v from_o a_o act_n 1._o edw._n 6.1_o c._n make_v against_o such_o irreverent_a speak_n against_o it_o for_o whereas_o the_o sacrament_n be_v according_a to_o ancient_a custom_n deliver_v to_o each_o communicant_a in_o a_o small_a round_a wafer_n hence_o they_o give_v it_o the_o name_n of_o round-robin_n and_o because_o the_o part_n thereof_o that_o be_v reserve_v to_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o sick_a be_v hang_v up_o over_o the_o altar_n in_o a_o pix_n or_o box_n they_o name_v it_o jack_n in_o a_o box_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n call_v it_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o halter_n see_v heylin_n hist_n of_o reform_v 49.63_o such_o profaneness_n follow_v the_o remedy_n of_o what_o they_o call_v superstition_n §_o 145_o second_o c._n 2._o of_o ordination_n see_v 3_o 4._o edw._n 6.10_o c._n have_v likewise_o condemn_v among_o other_o superstitious_a book_n the_o former_a church-form_n of_o ordination_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n the_o king_n cause_v a_o new_a form_n to_o be_v prescribe_v upon_o this_o pretence_n in_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o so_o concord_n and_o unity_n may_v be_v have_v within_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n in_o these_o ordination_n but_o can_v not_o this_o have_v be_v do_v without_o innovation_n by_o strict_o confine_v all_o to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o former_a church_n form_n or_o if_o these_o be_v various_a to_o some_o one_o of_o they_o c._n stat._n 3_o 4._o edw._n 6.12_o c._n now_o for_o the_o compile_n of_o this_o new_a form_n the_o parliament_n order_n that_o such_o as_o by_o fix_v prelate_n 42._o see_v before_o §._o 42._o and_o six_o other_o to_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o king_n or_o by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v devise_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o set_v forth_o under_o the_o great_a seal_n shall_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o act_n without_o obtain_v or_o require_v any_o ratification_n thereof_o from_o any_o synod_n be_v lawful_o use_v and_o none_o other_o any_o law_n or_o prescription_n to_o the_o contrary_a thereof_o notwithstanding_o in_o which_o new_a form_n among_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o the_o former_a now_o cast_v out_o this_o be_v one_o to_o the_o great_a contradiction_n of_o all_o antiquity_n the_o bishop_n confer_v on_o the_o ordain_a presbyter_n potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la propriè_fw-la dictum_fw-la &_o verè_fw-la propitiatorium_fw-la see_v in_o what_o sense_n understand_v and_o explain_v by_o the_o church_n in_o discourse_n of_o the_o eucharist_n §_o 251._o &c_n &c_n deo_fw-la missasque_fw-la celcbrandi_fw-la tam_fw-la pro_fw-la vivis_fw-la quam_fw-la pro_fw-la defunctis_fw-la quod_fw-la omnem_fw-la superat_fw-la impietatem_fw-la say_v mason_n de_fw-fr minist_n p._n 242._o 17._o c._n and_o this_o be_v another_o the_o oath_n of_o submission_n of_o the_o ordain_v or_o consecrate_a to_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o patriarch_n instead_o of_o which_o be_v prescribe_v another_o oath_n to_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o temporal_a prince_n from_o which_o regal_a supremacy_n also_o we_o find_v cranmer_n after_o fifteen_o year_n govern_v the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n receive_v at_o the_o come_n in_o of_o a_o new_a sovereign_n a_o new_a licence_n of_o ordain_v bishop_n and_o priest_n therein_o durante_fw-la beneplacito_fw-la regis_fw-la the_o form_n as_o sanders_n p._n 170._o have_v set_v it_o down_o run_v thus_o quandoquidem_fw-la omnis_fw-la jurisdicendi_fw-la authoritas_fw-la atque_fw-la etiam_fw-la jurisdictio_fw-la omnimoda_fw-la tam_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quam_fw-la seecularis_fw-la a_o regius_fw-la petestate_fw-la velut_fw-la a_o supremo_fw-la capite_fw-la manta_fw-la etc._n etc._n ad_fw-la ordinandum_fw-la igitur_fw-la quoscunque_fw-la intra_fw-la diaecesim_n tuam_fw-la cantuariensem_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la etiam_fw-la sacros_fw-la &_o presbyteratus_n ordines_fw-la promovendum_fw-la per_fw-la praesentes_fw-la ad_fw-la nostrum_fw-la beneplacitum_fw-la duraturos_fw-la tibi_fw-la damus_fw-la potestatem_fw-la and_o some_o such_o thing_n be_v intimate_v by_o mr._n prin_fw-mi unbishoping_a of_o timothy_n p._n 80._o i_o must_v inform_v our_o bishop_n say_v he_o for_o their_o learning_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n the_o sixth_n time_n have_v special_a clause_n in_o their_o letter_n patent_n authorise_v they_o to_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n as_o bishop_n poynet_n scory_n coverdale_n patent_n 5._o edw._n 6._o pars_fw-la 1._o testify_v at_o large_a and_o there_o be_v no_o wonder_n in_o this_o if_o you_o recall_v to_o mind_n archbishop_n cranmer_n answer_n to_o the_o query_n make_v concern_v these_o matter_n recite_v before_o §_o 105._o n._n 3._o which_o patent_n if_o they_o imply_v such_o a_o supremacy_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o prince_n as_o that_o he_o may_v if_o he_o please_v prohibit_v any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n at_o all_o from_o ordain_v minister_n in_o his_o dominion_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o first_o thesis_n above_o §_o 2._o but_o yet_o this_o new_a ordinal_n be_v not_o so_o well_o purify_v from_o former_a superstition_n letter_n see_v in_o fox_n p._n 1366._o the_o king_n and_o earl_n of_o war_n wick'_v letter_n but_o that_o some_o who_o be_v present_v to_o bishopric_n be_v stumble_v therewith_o and_o the_o king_n dispensation_n be_v obtain_v in_o order_n to_o the_o consecrate_v of_o bishop_n hooper_n for_o his_o not_o observe_v of_o some_o thing_n therein_o and_o particular_o for_o his_o not_o take_v the_o new_a oath_n either_o that_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o archbishop_n or_o that_o of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n which_o perhaps_o he_o late_o season_v abroad_o with_o calvin_n doctrine_n 37_o see_v before_o §._o 37_o can_v not_o so_o easy_o digest_v §_o 146_o three_o prayer_n 3●_n of_o common_a prayer_n not_o long_o after_o the_o production_n of_o the_o new_a form_n in_o administer_a the_o communion_n in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n he_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v review_v and_o also_o then_o to_o be_v draw_v up_o a_o new_a form_n of_o common_a prayer_n for_o matin_n and_o evensong_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o other_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n if_o i_o may_v use_v the_o phrase_n of_o the_o act_n 2._o edw._n 6.1_o c._n which_o form_n compose_v by_o seven_o bishop_n and_o seven_o other_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o clergy_n choose_v by_o the_o king_n yet_o one_o of_o they_o day_n bishop_n of_o chicester_n after_o it_o be_v do_v refuse_v to_o subscribe_v it_o who_o be_v afterward_o also_o turn_v out_o of_o his_o
sacrifice_n be_v thus_o dis-avowed_n by_o king_n edward_n reformation_n and_o no_o benefit_n acknowledge_v of_o this_o high_a service_n save_v to_o the_o communicant_n in_o their_o receive_n it_o and_o in_o the_o priest_n distribute_v of_o it_o to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o next_o place_n the_o priest_n be_v prohibit_v the_o celebration_n thereof_o whensoever_o there_o be_v no_o other_o communicant_n beside_o himself_o tho_n this_v communicate_v of_o the_o priest_n alone_o be_v not_o design_v but_o a_o casual_a thing_n as_o have_v be_v say_v and_o can_v only_o be_v charge_v upon_o the_o people_n neglect_n and_o fault_n who_o have_v the_o same_o need_n thereof_o and_o benefit_n thereby_o as_o the_o priest_n might_n be_v many_o at_o least_o by_o turn_n accompany_v he_o in_o the_o daily_a break_n of_o that_o celestial_a bread_n if_o it_o be_v so_o heinous_a a_o thing_n for_o he_o to_o feed_v thereon_o alone_o rather_o than_o that_o this_o the_o most_o honourable_a part_n of_o the_o divine_a service_n shall_v be_v discontinue_v in_o the_o church_n 118_o see_v before_o §._o 118_o contrary_a to_o the_o former_a universal_a practice_n of_o christianity_n and_o also_o the_o late_a judgement_n under_o henry_n the_o eight_o of_o the_o english_a clergy_n it_o be_v order_v therefore_o that_o all_o those_o call_v private_a mass_n shall_v be_v suppress_v add_v that_o on_o the_o litany-day_n wednesday_n and_o fryday_n and_o all_o other_o solemn_a day_n of_o worship_n when_o there_o be_v none_o dispose_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o priest_n he_o after_o the_o litany_n end_v shall_v put_v upon_o he_o a_o plain_a albe_n or_o surplice_n with_o a_o cope_n and_o say_v all_o thing_n at_o the_o altar_n appoint_v to_o be_v say_v at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n 133._o see_v k._n edw._n first_o common-prayer_n book_n rubifol_n 133._o until_o after_o the_o offertory_n and_o then_o let_v alone_o the_o foresay_a celebration_n add_v one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o collect_v which_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o communion_n and_o then_o turn_v he_o to_o the_o people_n shall_v let_v they_o depart_v with_o the_o accustom_a blessing_n §_o 153_o and_o thus_o first_o begin_v the_o christian_a sacrifice_n 133._o see_v the_o first_o com._n prayer_n book_n of_o ed._n 6._o fol._n 133._o that_o never_o cease_v former_o in_o the_o church_n every_o day_n or_o at_o least_o on_o all_o solemn_a day_n to_o be_v offer_v by_o certain_a degree_n to_o be_v omit_v in_o this_o purify_a church_n the_o practice_n thereof_o decrease_v from_o once_o a_o day_n to_o once_o a_o week_n from_o once_o a_o week_n to_o once_o a_o month_n from_o this_o to_o once_o a_o year_n and_o of_o late_a in_o many_o church_n not_o to_o be_v have_v at_o all_o though_o they_o who_o in_o these_o day_n of_o king_n edward_n make_v the_o first_o breach_n upon_o the_o church_n former_a practice_n as_o it_o be_v foresee_v this_o evil_a endeavour_v in_o some_o part_n to_o remedy_n or_o prevent_v it_o by_o enjoin_v that_o in_o all_o cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n church_n where_o they_o suppose_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v still_o daily_a communion_n see_v king_n edward_n be_v first_o common-prayer-book_n fol._n 113_o compare_v with_o fol._n 123._o there_o shall_v always_o in_o they_o some_o communicate_v with_o the_o priest_n that_o minister_v and_o that_o in_o parish-church_n whereas_o the_o parishioner_n of_o every_o parish_n be_v order_v in_o such_o a_o course_n as_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o find_v the_o holy_a loaf_n former_o now_o to_o offer_v every_o sunday_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o offertory_n the_o just_a valour_n and_o price_n of_o the_o holy_a loaf_n with_o all_o such_o money_n and_o other_o thing_n as_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v offer_v with_o the_o same_o out_o of_o which_o the_o pastor_n be_v to_o provide_v sufficient_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o weekly_a communion_n in_o these_o parish-church_n i_o say_v it_o be_v enjoin_v that_o some_o one_o at_o the_o least_o for_o one_o beside_o the_o priest_n be_v as_o yet_o sufficient_a of_o that_o house_n in_o the_o parish_n to_o which_o by_o course_n it_o appertain_v to_o offer_v for_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o communion_n shall_v on_o that_o sunday_n receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n with_o the_o priest_n which_o say_v the_o book_n may_v be_v better_o do_v for_o that_o they_o know_v before_o when_o their_o course_n come_v and_o may_v therefore_o dispose_v themselves_o to_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o minister_n have_v always_o some_o to_o communicate_v with_o he_o may_z according_o solemnize_v so_o high_a and_o holy_a mystery_n with_o all_o the_o suffrage_n and_o due_a order_n appoint_v for_o the_o same_o but_o in_o the_o second_o reform_a book_n these_o order_n be_v relax_v the_o weekly_a offering_n by_o turn_n for_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o communion_n now_o remit_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n or_o communion_n require_v in_o cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n church_n every_o sunday_n and_o that_o in_o parish-church_n it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v at_o least_o three_o time_n in_o a_o year_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v in_o no_o place_n at_o no_o time_n unless_o there_o be_v three_o to_o communicate_v beside_o he_o that_o officeate_n by_o which_o when_o none_o or_o only_o few_o than_o three_o offer_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o priest_n he_o be_v necessitate_v to_o omit_v this_o service_n as_o well_o in_o cathedral_n as_o parish-church_n notwithstanding_o any_o injunction_n of_o frequentation_n but_o the_o first_o innovator_n may_v have_v prudent_o discern_v that_o when_o as_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o service_n thus_o will_v depend_v only_o on_o the_o people_n devotion_n either_o a_o reception_n of_o the_o mystery_n by_o the_o priest_n alone_o must_v some_o time_n be_v permit_v or_o this_o sacrifice_n many_o time_n omit_v there_o be_v two_o injunction_n indeed_o wherein_o these_o reformer_n seem_v to_o have_v endeavour_v to_o some_o degree_n the_o preservation_n of_o the_o former_a devotion_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o prayer_n and_o communion_n the_o one_o communion_n see_v the_o rub._n after_o the_o communion_n this_o foremention_v that_o in_o cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n church_n where_o be_v many_o priest_n and_o deacon_n they-should_a all_o receive_v the_o communion_n with_o the_o minister_n every_o sunday_n at_o the_o least_o except_o they_o i._n e._n some_o not_o all_o of_o they_o have_v a_o reasonable_a cause_n to_o the_o contrary_n book_n see_v the_o p●●face_n to_o the_o com._n prayer_n book_n the_o other_o this_o for_o say_v their_o office_n daily_o as_o former_o that_o all_o priest_n and_o deacon_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o say_v daily_o the_o morning_n and_o evening_n prayer_n yet_o how_o short_a this_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o office_n they_o quit_v either_o open_o in_o the_o parish_n church_n or_o chappel_n if_o at_o home_o and_o not_o be_v otherwise_o reasonable_o let_v or_o private_o except_o they_o be_v let_v by_o preach_v study_v of_o divinity_n or_o some_o other_o urgent_a cause_n but_o here_o also_o the_o two_o exceptive_a clause_n annex_v except_o they_o have_v a_o reasonable_a cause_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o former_a and_o except_o they_o be_v let_v by_o preach_v study_v of_o divinity_n or_o some_o other_o urgent_a cause_n in_o the_o latter_a have_v render_v these_o injunction_n as_o to_o the_o general_a without_o vigour_n and_o effect_n or_o practice_n in_o this_o church_n which_o the_o prudence_n of_o those_o who_o contrive_v the_o scotch_a liturgy_n well_o observe_v think_v fit_a thus_o to_o qualify_v the_o latter_a exception_n liturgy_n see_v the_o preface_n to_o the_o scotch_a liturgy_n of_o which_o cause_n say_v they_o if_o it_o be_v frequent_o pretend_v they_o be_v to_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o province_n the_o judge_n and_o allower_n §_o 154_o litany_n and_o invocation_n of_o saiat_n expunge_v out_o of_o the_o litany_n beside_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n thus_o remove_v out_o of_o the_o second_o new_a form_n of_o the_o communion_n the_o invocation_n and_o suffrage_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v also_o expunge_v out_o of_o the_o public_a litany_n when-as_a even_o in_o the_o first_o english_a litany_n put_v out_o under_o king_n edward_n after_z o_o holy_a bless_a and_o glorious_a trinity_n etc._n etc._n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o it_o follow_v thus_o holy_a virgin_n mary_n mother_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n pray_v for_o we_o all_o holy_a angel_n and_o arch-angel_n and_o all_o holy_a order_n of_o bless_a spirit_n pray_v for_o we_o all_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n apostlet_n martyr_n confessor_n and_o virgin_n and_o all_o the_o bless_a company_n of_o heaven_n pray_v for_o we_o likewise_o in_o the_o parliament-act_n 3_o 4._o edw._n 6.10_o c._n it_o be_v command_v that_o in_o
as_o particular_o that_o 1._o edw._n 6.2_o mention_v before_o §_o 40_o yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o all_o the_o chief_a act_n that_o king_n edward_n parliament_n or_o clergy_n have_v make_v concern_v the_o reformation_n be_v now_o revive_v 2._o sec_n 1._o eliz._n ●_o c._n 2._o and_o all_o that_o queen_n mary_n or_o henry_n the_o eighth_n save_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o supremacy_n parliament_n or_o clergy_n have_v do_v against_o it_o be_v repeal_v but_o this_o clergy_n §._o 179._o n._n 3._o b●t_a n●t_n by_o the_o clergy_n though_o do_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n be_v do_v by_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o parliament_n without_o obtain_v any_o synod_n to_o reverse_v the_o contrary_a decree_n of_o the_o former_a synod_n under_o those_o two_o prince_n nay_o further_o whilst_o all_o the_o bishop_n that_o fate_n then_o in_o parliament_n open_o oppose_v these_o innovation_n cambden_n hist_o eliz._n p_o 9_o by_o her_o own_o sole_a authority_n the_o queen_n likewise_o publish_v certain_a injunction_n to_o the_o clergy_n and_o now_o the_o regal_a supremacy_n be_v thus_o restore_v only_o by_o the_o civil_a power_n a_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v also_o draw_v up_o and_o impose_v on_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n upon_o penalty_n of_o the_o refuser_n lose_v all_o their_o ecclesiastical_a promotion_n benefice_n and_o office_n 1._o eliz._n 1._o c._n and_o so_o this_o oath_n be_v unanimous_o refuse_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n that_o then_o sit_v save_v only_o the_o bishop_n of_o landaff_n i_o say_v all_o that_o then_o sit_v for_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o contagious_a sickness_n that_o then_o reign_v within_o less_o than_o the_o space_n of_o a_o twelvemonth_n say_v dr._n heylin_n hist_o of_o reform_v qu._n marry_o p._n 81._o almost_o one_o half_a of_o the_o english_a bishop_n have_v make_v void_a their_o see_v three_o bishopric_n have_v be_v void_a from_o 1557_o three_o bishop_n die_v some_o few_o week_n before_o the_o queen_n three_o not_o long_o after_o one_o on_o the_o same_o day_n which_o with_o the_o death_n of_o so_o many_o of_o the_o priest_n also_o in_o several_a place_n do_v much_o facilitate_v the_o way_n say_v he_o to_o that_o reformation_n that_o soon_o after_o follow_v they_o be_v all_o eject_v out_o of_o their_o bishopric_n and_o with_o they_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o clergy_n fifteen_o precedent_n of_o college_n twelve_o dean_n twelve_o arch-deacon_n six_o abbot_n 17._o camb._n p._n 17._o fifty_o prebendary_n lose_v their_o spiritual_a preferment_n meanwhile_o many_o other_o say_v dr._n heylin_n hist_o of_o qu._n eliz._n p._n 115._o who_o be_v cordial_o affect_v to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n dispense_n with_o themselves_o in_o outward_a conformity_n upon_o a_o hope_n of_o such_o revolution_n in_o church-affair_n as_o have_v happen_v former_o §_o 180_o here_o that_o we_o may_v examine_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o ejection_n of_o these_o prelate_n for_o refuse_v such_o oath_n of_o the_o eject_v of_o the_o bishop_n for_o refuse_v the_o oath_n of_o her_o supremacy_n the_o unlawfulness_n there_o of_o upon_o which_o depend_v the_o lawfulness_n or_o unlawfulness_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o clergy_n succeed_v they_o i_o will_v first_o set_v you_o down_o the_o form_n of_o the_o oath_n which_o be_v this_o i_o do_v testify_v and_o declare_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o the_o queen_n highness_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o this_o realm_n as_o well_o in_o all_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n or_o cause_n as_o temporal_a and_o that_o no_o foreign_a prince_n person_n prelate_n state_n aught_o to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n power_n superiority_n pre-eminence_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a within_o this_o realm_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v utter_o renounce_v all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n power_n superiority_n and_o do_v promise_n that_o from_o henceforth_o i_o shall_v assist_v and_o defend_v to_o my_o power_n all_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n and_o authority_n grant_v or_o belong_v to_o the_o queen_n highness_n or_o unite_a and_o annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n §_o 181_o this_o oath_n you_o see_v consist_v of_o two_o part_n a_o supremacy_n attribute_v and_o profess_v to_o the_o prince_n extend_v concern_v regal_a supremacy_n how_o far_o it_o seem_v to_o extend_v and_o a_o supremacy_n deny_v and_o renounce_v to_o any_o foreign_a power_n and_o that_o i_o may_v speak_v more_o distinct_o in_o this_o matter_n 1._o as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o thus_o much_o be_v free_o concede_v that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v a_o supremacy_n in_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o that_o such_o as_o none_o other_o have_v namely_o this_o a_o external_a coactive_a power_n or_o jurisdiction_n commit_v to_o he_o by_o god_n to_o enjoin_v to_o his_o subject_n the_o observance_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v declare_v to_o he_o to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o church_n and_o to_o restrain_v and_o punish_v the_o transgressor_n of_o they_o whether_o clergy_n or_o laity_n within_o his_o dominion_n with_o the_o civil_a sword_n which_o god_n have_v put_v only_o into_o his_o hand_n so_o that_o no_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v by_o the_o ecclesiastic_n or_o other_o execute_v or_o enforce_v on_o the_o subject_a as_o law_n viz._n with_o external_a coaction_n pecuniary_a or_o corporal_a mulct_n or_o punishment_n etc._n etc._n before_o the_o secular_a prince_n be_v please_v to_o admit_v such_o canon_n and_o enroll_v they_o among_o his_o law_n or_o to_o concede_fw-la such_o coactive_a power_n to_o his_o clergy_n how_o far_o also_o the_o king_n supremacy_n may_v extend_v over_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n concern_v the_o investiture_n and_o presentation_n of_o they_o so_o long_o as_o their_o canonical_a sufficiency_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o the_o clergy_n to_o such_o temporal_a church-possession_n as_o either_o prince_n or_o other_o by_o their_o permission_n have_v confer_v on_o the_o church_n about_o which_o have_v be_v in_o ancient_a time_n great_a controversy_n between_o several_a king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o pope_n i_o meddle_v not_o to_o determine_v let_v this_o for_o the_o present_a be_v grant_v as_o much_o as_o any_o prince_n have_v claim_v it_o be_v likewise_o concede_v that_o in_o those_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n that_o express_o extend_v the_o regal_a supremacy_n any_o further_o which_o may_v be_v the_o only_a supreme_a power_n m_o ecclesiastical_n in_o one_o respect_n and_o not_o in_o another_o nor_o no_o more_o be_v there_o in_o the_o thirty_o seven_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o expound_v the_o king_n supremacy_n thus_o that_o he_o be_v to_o rule_v all_o estate_n and_o degree_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n by_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a and_o to_o restrain_v with_o the_o civil_a sword_n the_o stubborn_a and_o evil-doer_n all_o which_o he_o may_v do_v and_o yet_o be_v tie_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o obey_v the_o church_n her_o law_n and_o to_o leave_v to_o her_o the_o sole_a judgement_n who_o be_v these_o evil-doer_n as_o to_o the_o break_n of_o god_n law_n or_o who_o stubborn_a and_o heretical_a person_n and_o such_o regal_a supremacy_n will_v well_o consist_v with_o another_o either_o with_o a_o domestic_a supremacy_n of_o his_o own_o clergy_n in_o judge_a controversy_n and_o promulgate_a law_n in_o mere_o spiritual_n or_o also_o with_o a_o foreign_a supremacy_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o a_o patriarch_n over_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o patriarchy_n in_o what_o prince_n dominion_n soever_o or_o of_o a_o general_n council_n over_o all_o provincial_a or_o national_a church_n if_o therefore_o only_o such_o a_o regal_a supremacy_n as_o this_o be_v intend_v in_o the_o oath_n it_o can_v be_v just_o refuse_v viz._n if_o the_o oath_n shall_v run_v thus_o i_o do_v testify_v that_o the_o king_n be_v the_o supreme_a etc._n etc._n as_o well_o in_o all_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o temporal_a that_o be_v as_o this_o supremacy_n be_v expound_v in_o article_n thirty_o seven_o to_o rule_v with_o the_o civil_a sword_n all_o estate_n and_o degree_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n by_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a and_o to_o restrain_v with_o the_o civil_a sword_n the_o stubborn_a and_o evil-doer_n and_o if_o this_o word_n such_o be_v insert_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v and_o i_o do_v testify_v that_o no_o foreign_a prince_n prelate_n etc._n etc._n aught_o to_o have_v any_o such_o jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n and_o ergo_fw-la i_o do_v utter_o renounce_v all_o such_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n you_o will_v say_v what_o be_v gain_v to_o the_o king_n by_o a_o oath_n so_o limit_v this_o that_o no_o foreign_a or_o domestic_a
warrantable_o do_v without_o a_o forego_n synodical_a vote_n p._n 73._o especial_o when_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n of_o fear_n that_o the_o most_o of_o they_o that_o shall_v meet_v be_v apparent_o obnoxious_a to_o factious_a interest_n and_o p._n 72._o if_o the_o prince_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n stand_v bind_v to_o establish_v within_o his_o dominion_n whatsoever_o be_v evidence_v to_o he_o by_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n shall_v he_o not_o preform_v his_o know_a duty_n till_o the_o vote_n of_o a_o major_a part_n of_o a_o synod_n give_v he_o leave_v to_o do_v it_o and_n here_o i_o suppose_v dr._n fern_n will_v grant_v that_o the_o prince_n be_v bind_v also_o to_o establish_v christ_n law_n in_o which_o he_o be_v accountable_a if_o he_o do_v amiss_o 9_o c._n §_o 21._o whenever_o it_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v evidence_v to_o he_o by_o any_o other_o though_o none_o of_o or_o contrary_a to_o the_o clergy_n provide_v that_o be_v first_o consult_v and_o hear_v the_o reason_n of_o some_o at_o least_o of_o his_o clergy_n 3_o that_o prince_n may_v prohibit_v the_o decree_n even_o of_o general_n council_n when_o they_o be_v evidence_v to_o they_o non_fw-la docere_fw-la legem_fw-la christi_fw-la 9_o c._n 28._o §_o general_a council_n be_v the_o great_a and_o high_a mean_n of_o direction_n which_o king_n can_v have_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n but_o still_o with_o the_o limitation_n quatenus_fw-la docent_fw-la legem_fw-la christi_fw-la of_o which_o i_o suppose_v the_o prince_n must_v judge_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o major_a part_n shall_v be_v sway_v by_o factious_a or_o worldly_a interest_n therefore_o king_n and_o emperor_n say_v he_o may_v have_v cause_n give_v they_o upon_o evidence_n of_o thing_n undue_o carry_v to_o use_v their_o supreme_a power_n for_o forbid_v of_o their_o decree_n as_o be_v do_v by_o theodosius_n against_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o by_o the_o king_n of_o france_n against_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n forbid_v the_o decree_n of_o it_o to_o be_v receive_v for_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n 4_o 9_o c._n 21._o §_o he_o approve_v the_o concession_n of_o the_o clergy_n under_o henry_n the_o eight_o in_o bind_v themselves_o by_o promise_n in_o convocation_n in_o verbo_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la not_o to_o enact_v or_o promulge_v or_o execute_v any_o new_a canon_n or_o constitution_n without_o the_o king_n assent_n which_o assent_n be_v it_o require_v only_o for_o secure_v the_o prince_n that_o nothing_o be_v act_v in_o such_o synod_n prejudicial_a to_o his_o civil_a right_n it_o be_v willing_o allow_v but_o it_o be_v extend_v further_o for_o the_o prince_n prohibit_v any_o other_o decree_n whatever_o when_o not_o evidence_v to_o he_o to_o be_v make_v juxta_fw-la legem_fw-la christi_fw-la against_o which_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o his_o dominion_n he_o remain_v accountable_a to_o god_n as_o you_o have_v see_v before_o §_o 210_o now_o to_o reflect_v on_o what_o dr._n fern_n have_v say_v he_o seem_v 1._o first_o to_o grant_v that_o the_o clergy_n can_v public_o establish_v nothing_o against_o or_o without_o the_o prince_n consent_n so_o that_o whatever_o they_o can_v evidence_n to_o the_o prince_n that_o so_o he_o may_v concur_v to_o the_o publish_n thereof_o they_o be_v hinder_v from_o promulgate_a or_o evidence_v it_o to_o the_o people_n so_o that_o they_o be_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n the_o ordinary_a judge_n and_o definer_n of_o controversy_n as_o that_o their_o definition_n if_o not_o evidence_v to_o may_v be_v suppress_v by_o the_o prince_n nor_o aught_o to_o come_v abroad_o to_o their_o flock_n and_o how_o consist_v this_o with_o what_o he_o say_v 9_o c._n §_o 21._o that_o in_o order_n to_o our_o believe_v we_o must_v attend_v to_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n give_v in_o or_o propound_v i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v to_o we_o by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n again_o how_o consist_v this_o with_o the_o clergy_n coercive_a power_n 9_o c._n 19_o §_o upon_o the_o prince_n if_o christian_a when_o obstinate_o gainsaying_n they_o unless_o his_o gainsaying_n can_v never_o be_v call_v obstinate_a will_v not_o this_o follow_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o clergy_n may_v not_o promulgate_v anti-arrianisme_a in_o the_o empire_n until_o they_o have_v evidence_v it_o i._n e._n by_o his_o approbation_n thereof_o to_o constantitus_n the_o then_o emperor_n 2._o when_o he_o say_v that_o a_o prince_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o take_v the_o direction_n of_o the_o whole_a clergy_n or_o of_o a_o synod_n but_o only_o of_o some_o faithful_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n when_o he_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o fear_v faction_n in_o such_o synod_n he_o seem_v in_o this_o only_a to_o keep_v a_o gap_n open_a for_o justify_v they_o pass_v reformation_n and_o in_o effect_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o prince_n may_v go_v therein_o against_o his_o clergy_n for_o since_o the_o clergy_n be_v a_o subordinate_a and_o regularly-united_n body_n he_o that_o take_v direction_n only_o from_o some_o of_o they_o who_o he_o know_v or_o doubt_n and_o fear_n to_o be_v different_a in_o their_o judgement_n from_o the_o main_a body_n take_v directions_z not_o from_o the_o clergy_n but_o from_o those_o that_o be_v against_o they_o as_o have_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o six_o thesis_n i_o mean_v against_o they_o that_o be_v the_o judge_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o the_o definer_n of_o thing_n in_o controversy_n and_o judge_n of_o heresy_n what_o have_v be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v condemn_v as_o such_o without_o who_o therefore_o the_o prince_n can_v certain_o know_v what_o be_v or_o be_v not_o such_o as_o for_o that_o which_o be_v say_v that_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o prince_n be_v not_o in_o order_n to_o our_o believe_v if_o dr._n fern_n mean_v that_o the_o prince_n do_v not_o propose_v what_o be_v evidence_v to_o he_o to_o be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o subject_n with_o a_o require_v of_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n the_o contrary_n be_v clear_a at_o least_o in_o the_o practical_o enjoin_v all_o which_o necessary_o involve_v faith_n see_v chur._n gover._n 2._o part_n 34._o §_o 3._o part_n 12._o §_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o subject_n can_v just_o be_v necessitate_v to_o believe_v what_o the_o prince_n establish_v so_o neither_o be_v they_o what_o the_o clergy_n establish_v in_o his_o opinion_n who_o i_o think_v allow_v to_o all_o man_n judicium_fw-la disoretivum_fw-la in_o respect_n of_o any_o church-authority_n 3._o the_o prince_n thus_o establish_v church-matter_n not_o upon_o the_o clergy_n authority_n but_o upon_o evidence_n he_o seem_v equal_o to_o oblige_v the_o prince_n to_o establish_v they_o by_o whosoever_o evidence_v to_o he_o or_o by_o his_o own_o search_n discover_v for_o what_o matter_v it_o to_o the_o evidence_n who_o bring_v it_o and_o then_o how_o be_v the_o prince_n judgement_n say_v to_o be_v secondary_a in_o respect_n to_o the_o clergy_n indeed_o if_o the_o prince_n can_v always_o be_v certain_a in_o his_o evidence_n so_o as_o not_o to_o mistake_v to_o think_v something_o evidence_v to_o he_o when_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o and_o not_o to_o think_v other_o thing_n sufficient_o evidence_v when_o they_o be_v so_o there_o be_v less_o hazard_n in_o leave_v church-matter_n thus_o to_o his_o disposal_n but_o fince_n thing_n be_v much_o otherwise_o and_o evidence_v truth_n to_o any_o one_o by_o reason_n of_o different_a understanding_n education_n passion_n and_o interest_n be_v a_o thing_n very_o casual_a so_o that_o what_o be_v easy_o evidenceable_a to_o another_o may_v happen_v not_o to_o be_v so_o to_o the_o sovereign_a power_n when_o not_o patient_a enough_o to_o be_v inform_v mislead_v and_o prepossess_v by_o a_o faction_n not_o so_o capable_a as_o some_o other_o by_o defect_n of_o nature_n or_o learning_n facile_a to_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o last_o speaker_n &c_n &c_n what_o a_o uncertain_a and_o mutable_a condition_n will_v church-affair_n be_v put_v in_o as_o we_o see_v they_o have_v be_v here_o in_o england_n since_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o when_o all_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o clergy_n upon_o the_o people_n be_v cast_v upon_o this_o evidence_a first_o of_o their_o matter_n to_o the_o present_a sovereign_a power_n §_o 211_o concern_v theodosius_n act_n urge_v by_o dr._n fern_n the_o story_n in_o brief_a be_v this_o the_o second_o ephesine_n council_n be_v general_n in_o its_o representation_n but_o not_o in_o the_o free_a vote_n of_o the_o representative_n nor_o in_o the_o acceptation_n thereof_o by_o all_o or_o the_o major_a part_n of_o catholic_n church_n in_o it_o paucis_fw-la imprudentibus_fw-la about_o some_o ninety_o in_o all_o obviantibus_fw-la sacramento_fw-la verae_fw-la
it_o remain_v therefore_o to_o examine_v whether_o he_o have_v be_v a_o more_o faithful_a relator_n of_o our_o own_o history_n and_o what_o truth_n there_o be_v in_o his_o last_o epistolary_a assertion_n that_o he_o know_v not_o of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o this_o discourse_n deny_v to_o the_o prince_n but_o what_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v forgo_v before_o henry_n the_o 8_o now_o whatever_o in_o relation_n to_o a_o power_n in_o spiritual_n be_v in_o this_o discourse_n accuse_v of_o novelty_n seem_v easy_o reducible_a to_o these_o two_o head_n one_a a_o supremacy_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a deny_v to_o the_o western_a patriarch_n as_o appear_v by_o our_o prince_n take_v away_o all_o manner_n of_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n prohibit_v all_o appeal_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n all_o bull_n from_o it_o and_o in_o general_a all_o intercourse_n with_o it_o 2_o the_o same_o supremacy_n invest_v in_o the_o sovereign_n as_o appear_v by_o king_n henry_n assume_v the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o king_n make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n by_o that_o synodical_a act_n of_o the_o clergy_n not_o to_o assemble_v or_o promulgate_v any_o canon_n without_o his_o leave_n by_o that_o power_n grant_v to_o the_o king_n to_o visit_v ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o to_o reform_v error_n and_o heresy_n by_o his_o collate_v to_o benefice_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o by_o hinder_v excommunication_n in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la now_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o charge_n of_o novelty_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v for_o some_o year_n usurp_v such_o a_o superiority_n but_o then_o as_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o he_o do_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la claim_v such_o a_o power_n so_o that_o it_o do_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la belong_v to_o he_o be_v deny_v and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o far_o we_o affirm_v that_o he_o neither_o from_o the_o beginning_n challenge_v such_o a_o power_n nor_o be_v he_o afterward_o in_o so_o full_a possession_n of_o it_o but_o that_o our_o prince_n have_v upon_o occasion_n vindicate_v their_o own_o right_n against_o all_o papal_a or_o if_o he_o please_v patriarchal_a encroachment_n and_o here_o wave_v the_o dispute_n of_o right_n i_o shall_v confine_v myself_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o be_v the_o only_a case_n here_o controvert_v where_o one_a of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o western-patriarch_n that_o when_o austin_n come_v over_o to_o convert_v the_o saxon_n no_o such_o supremacy_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o british_a christians_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o celebrate_a answer_n of_o dinoth_n abbot_n of_o bangor_n to_o austin_n require_v such_o subjection_n notum_fw-la sit_fw-la vobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n 108._o etc._n spelm._n conc._n p._n 108._o be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o that_o we_o be_v all_o subject_n and_o obedient_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o so_o as_o we_o be_v also_o to_o every_o good_a &_o pious_a christian_a viz._n to_o love_v every_o one_o in_o his_o degree_n and_o place_n in_o perfect_a charity_n and_o to_o help_v every_o one_o by_o word_n and_o deed_n to_o attain_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o for_o other_o obedience_n i_o know_v none_o due_a to_o he_o who_o you_o call_v the_o pope_n and_o as_o little_a do_v i_o know_v by_o what_o right_a he_o can_v challenge_v to_o be_v father_n of_o father_n as_o for_o we_o we_o be_v under_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o caerleon_n upon_o vske_n who_o be_v to_o overlook_v and_o govern_v we_o under_o god_n this_o be_v far_o manifest_v from_o the_o 601._o the_o spelm_n a._n c._n 601._o british_a clergy_n twice_o refuse_v in_o full_a synod_n after_o mature_a deliberation_n to_o own_o any_o such_o subjection_n that_o appeal_v to_o rome_n be_v a_o thing_n unheard_a of_o till_o anselm_v time_n appear_v from_o the_o application_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o baron_n to_o he_o to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o such_o a_o attempt_n 39.30_o attempt_n inauditum_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la svo_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o usibus_fw-la ejus_fw-la omnino_fw-la contrarium_fw-la quemlibet_fw-la de_fw-la principibus_fw-la &_o praecipue_fw-la te_fw-la tale_n quid_fw-la praesumere_fw-la eadm_n p._n 39.30_o tell_v he_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unheard_a of_o in_o this_o kingdom_n that_o any_o of_o the_o peer_n and_o especial_o one_o in_o his_o station_n shall_v praesume_v any_o such_o thing_n that_o legate_n from_o rome_n be_v for_o 1100_o year_n unheard_a of_o in_o this_o kingdom_n we_o may_v learn_v from_o a_o memorable_a passage_n in_o the_o same_o historian_n concern_v the_o archbishop_n of_o vienna_n report_v to_o have_v the_o legantine_n power_n over_o england_n grant_v he_o a._n c._n 1100_o 41._o 1100_o quod_fw-la per_fw-la angliam_fw-la auditum_fw-la in_o admirationem_fw-la omnibus_fw-la venit_fw-la inauditum_fw-la scilicet_fw-la in_o britannia_fw-la cuncti_fw-la scientes_fw-la quemlibet_fw-la hominum_fw-la super_fw-la se_fw-la vice_n apostolicas_fw-la gerere_fw-la nisi_fw-la solum_fw-la archiepiscopum_fw-la cantuariae_fw-la ead._n p._n 58._o 41._o the_o news_n of_o which_o be_v come_v to_o england_n be_v very_o surprise_v to_o all_o people_n every_o one_o know_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n unheard_a of_o that_o any_o one_o shall_v have_v apostolical_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o but_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o the_o event_n of_o that_o legacy_n be_v suitable_a ibid._n suitable_a quapropter_fw-la sicut_fw-la venit_fw-la ita_fw-la reversus_fw-la est_fw-la à_fw-la nemine_fw-la pro_fw-la legato_n susceptus_fw-la vec_fw-la in_o aliquo_fw-la legati_fw-la officio_fw-la functus_fw-la ibid._n for_o as_o he_o come_v so_o he_o return_v be_v take_v by_o no_o one_o for_o a_o legate_n nor_o in_o any_o thing_n discharge_v the_o office_n of_o a_o legate_n that_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n own_a no_n superior_a bishop_n to_o her_o own_o but_o christ_n appear_v from_o she_o be_v call_v 60._o call_v ger._n dorob_n coll._n hist_o angl._n 1663._o 24._o col._n 1615._o 60._o omnium_fw-la nostrum_fw-la mater_fw-la communis_fw-la sub_fw-la sponsi_fw-la svi_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la dispositione_n and_o in_o another_o place_n mater_fw-la omnium_fw-la anglicanarum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la quae_fw-la svo_fw-la post_fw-la deum_fw-la proprio_fw-la laetatur_fw-la pastore_n that_o appeal_v to_o rome_n be_v prohibit_v in_o king_n henry_n the_o 2ds_n time_n be_v manifest_a from_o the_o famous_a capitula_fw-la of_o clarendon_n among_o which_o this_o be_v one_o article_n if_o any_o appeal_n shall_v happen_v they_o ought_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o archdeacon_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o archbishop_n and_o if_o the_o archbishop_n shall_v fail_v in_o do_v justice_n the_o last_o address_n be_v to_o be_v make_v to_o the_o king_n that_o doctrine_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o pope_n power_n be_v then_o public_o maintain_v appear_v from_o these_o proposition_n among_o other_o censure_v by_o becket_n one_a that_o none_o may_v appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a on_o any_o account_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n 2d_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n to_o depart_v the_o kingdom_n and_o come_v at_o the_o pope_n summons_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n 3d._n that_o no_o bishop_n may_v excommunicate_v any_o who_o hold_v of_o the_o king_n in_o capite_fw-la nor_o interdict_v his_o officer_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n which_o proposition_n so_o censure_v be_v select_v out_o of_o the_o capitula_fw-la of_o clarendon_n to_o the_o observation_n of_o which_o all_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o other_o ecclesiastic_n even_o becket_n himself_o among_o the_o rest_n though_o afterward_o fall_v of_o have_v oblige_v themselves_o by_o a_o solemn_a oath_n acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o king_n predecessor_n to_o wit_n henry_n the_o one_a his_o grandfather_n and_o other_o and_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a by_o all_o to_o what_o party_n the_o bishop_n be_v incline_v in_o these_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o king_n and_o becket_n we_o can_v better_o learn_v then_o from_o baronius_n who_o severe_a animadversion_n on_o these_o praelate_n wherein_o he_o teach_v we_o what_o king_n be_v to_o expect_v if_o they_o displease_v his_o holiness_n and_o how_o dreadful_a his_o fulmination_n be_v when_o they_o come_v out_o with_o full_a apostolic_a vigour_n the_o reader_n may_v peruse_v in_o the_o 1167._o the_o episcopi_fw-la angliae_fw-la suffraganei_fw-la sancti_fw-la thomae_fw-la literis_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la svi_fw-la archiepiscopi_fw-la apostolica_fw-la legatione_fw-la fungentis_fw-la exagitati_fw-la resilientes_fw-la haud_fw-la ut_fw-la par_fw-fr erat_fw-la parere_fw-la mandatis_fw-la salubres_fw-es admonitiones_fw-la suscipere_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la utilitati_fw-la consulere_fw-la vendicantes_fw-la eam_fw-la à_fw-la miscrrima_fw-la servitute_fw-la studuerunt_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la adverso_fw-la oppositi_fw-la pro_fw-la rege_fw-la contra_fw-la ipsum_fw-la scriptis_fw-la verbis_fw-la factisque_fw-la repugnant_a ac_fw-la tantum_fw-la abest_fw-la ut_fw-la quod_fw-la eorum_fw-la muneris_fw-la erat_fw-la ad_fw-la quod_fw-la &_o suis_fw-la eos_fw-la
literis_fw-la excitaverat_fw-la ipse_fw-la sanctus_n adversus_fw-la regem_fw-la pro_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la starent_fw-la redarguerent_fw-la &_o comminarentur_fw-la o●●entantes_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o arcu_fw-la sagittae_fw-la paratae_fw-la erant_fw-la ad_fw-la feriendum_fw-la censuras_fw-la nimirum_fw-la ecclesiasticas_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la apostolico_fw-la vigore_fw-la prodeuntes_fw-la ut_fw-la potius_fw-la adversus_fw-la eundem_fw-la pro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la libertate_fw-la pugnantem_fw-la sanctissimum_fw-la virum_fw-la bella_fw-la cierent_fw-la telis_fw-la oppeterent_fw-la jurgiorum_fw-la in_fw-la scandalum_fw-la omnium_fw-la ista_fw-la audientium_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la orthodoxorum_fw-la bar._n an._n a._n c._n 1167._o margin_n a_o like_a warm_a expostulation_n upon_o these_o proceed_n we_o meet_v with_o in_o stapleton_n de_fw-la tribus_fw-la thomis_n in_o thoma_n cant._n esset_fw-la cant._n quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la hic_fw-la henricus_fw-la secundus_fw-la tecte_v postulavit_fw-la quam_fw-la quod_fw-la henricus_fw-la octavus_n completa_fw-la jam_fw-la malitia_fw-la aperte_fw-la u_fw-la surpavit_fw-la nempe_fw-la ut_fw-la supremum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la caput_fw-la in_o anglia_fw-it esset_fw-la what_o do_v this_o henry_n the_o 2d_o tacit_o demand_v but_o that_o which_o henry_n the_o 8_o afterward_o open_o usurp_v viz._n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o again_o pap●_n again_o quid_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la aliud_fw-la nisi_fw-la ut_fw-la rex_fw-la angliae_fw-la sit_fw-la apud_fw-la suos_fw-la pap●_n what_o be_v this_o but_o that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n shall_v be_v pope_n over_o his_o own_o subject_n so_o that_o according_a to_o this_o author_n henry_n the_o 8_o be_v not_o the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v be_v too_o tedious_a here_o to_o recite_v the_o several_a statute_n make_v in_o succeed_a reign_n against_o the_o pope_n encroachment_n viz._n the_o 35_o of_o edw._n 1_o 25_o edu._n 3_o stat_n de_fw-fr provisoribus_fw-la 27_o ed._n 3._o c._n 1._o 38_o ed._n 3._o c._n 1.2_o 4._o stat_fw-la 2._o 2_o ric._n 2._o c._n 3._o 12_o r._n 2._o c._n 15._o 13_o r._n 2._o stat_fw-la 2._o cap._n 2._o 16_o r._n 2._o c._n 5._o 2_o hen._n 4._o cap._n 3._o 2_o hen._n 4._o cap._n 4._o 6_o hen._n 4._o cap._n 1._o which_o speak_v of_o horrible_a mischief_n and_o a_o damnable_a custom_n bring_v in_o of_o new_a in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n 7_o hen._n 4._o cap._n 6.8_o 9_o hen._n 4._o cap._n 8._o 3_o h._n 5._o c._n 4._o which_o see_v collect_v by_o rastal_n under_o the_o title_n of_o provision_n and_o praemunire_n fol._n 325._o it_o may_v suffice_v to_o add_v the_o opinion_n of_o our_o ●4_n our_o coke_n inst_z l._n 4._o c._n ●4_n lawyer_n that_o the_o article_n of_o the_o 25_o of_o hen._n 8._o c._n 19_o concern_v the_o prohibition_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n be_v declaratory_a of_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o the_o realm_n 1._o realm_n 1._o eliz._n c._n 1._o and_o according_o the_o law_n make_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o for_o extinguish_v all_o foreign_a power_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o restore_a to_o the_o crown_n of_o this_o realm_n the_o ancient_a right_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o same_o which_o right_n be_v destructive_a of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o will_v far_o appear_v by_o our_o 2d_o inquiry_n how_o far_o the_o regal_a power_n extend_v in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a where_o one_a as_o to_o the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n we_o find_v that_o 2._o that_o twisd_a c._n 5._o par_fw-fr 2._o king_n edgar_n be_v repute_v and_o write_v himself_o pastor_n pastorum_fw-la the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o his_o law_n and_o canon_n assure_v the_o world_n he_o do_v not_o in_o vain_a assume_v those_o title_n 8._o title_n chap._n 5._o par_fw-fr 14._o c._n 6._o par_fw-fr 8._o that_o our_o forefather_n style_v their_o king_n patron_n defender_n governor_n tutor_n and_o protector_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o king_n regimen_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o express_v by_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n in_o his_o law_n rex_fw-la quia_fw-la vicarius_fw-la summi_fw-la regis_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la constitutus_fw-la ut_fw-la regnum_fw-la terrenum_fw-la &_o populum_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o super_fw-la omne_fw-la sanctam_fw-la veneretur_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ejus_fw-la &_o regat_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la injuriosis_n defendat_fw-la leg._n edu._n conf._n apud_fw-la lamb._n where_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o challenge_v the_o power_n of_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o god_n so_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o artifice_n in_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o second_o to_o confer_v on_o the_o same_o king_n as_o a_o privilege_n delegated_a by_o he_o what_o he_o claim_v as_o a_o right_n derive_v immediate_o from_o god_n sunt_fw-la god_n vobis_fw-la &_o posteris_fw-la vestris_fw-la regibus_fw-la angliae_fw-la committimus_fw-la advocationem_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la loci_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la totius_fw-la angliae_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la vice_fw-la nostra_fw-la cum_fw-la concilio_n episcoporum_fw-la statuatis_fw-la ubique_fw-la quae_fw-la justa_fw-la sunt_fw-la to_o you_o say_v that_o pope_n to_o the_o confessor_n and_o your_o successor_n the_o king_n of_o england_n we_o commit_v the_o advowson_n of_o that_o place_n and_o power_n in_o our_o stead_n to_o order_v thing_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o your_o bishop_n where_o by_o the_o way_n if_o we_o may_v argue_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la this_o concession_n give_v the_o king_n of_o england_n as_o much_o right_n to_o the_o supremacy_n over_o this_o church_n as_o a_o like_a grant_n from_o another_o pope_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o sicily_n give_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o his_o spiritual_a monarchy_n over_o that_o province_n but_o the_o king_n of_o england_n derive_v their_o charter_n from_o a_o high_a power_n they_o challenge_v from_o st._n peter_n himself_o to_o be_v 13._o be_v 1_o pet._n ii_o 13._o supreme_a and_o from_o st._n paul_n that_o 1._o that_o rom._n xiii_o 1._o every_o soul_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o they_o and_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o regal_a power_n may_v be_v learn_v from_o st._n austin_n who_o teach_v we_o 51._o we_o in_o hoc_fw-la reges_fw-la sicut_fw-la eye_n divinitus_fw-la praecipitur_fw-la deo_fw-la serviunt_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la reges_fw-la sunt_fw-la si_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la svo_fw-la bona_fw-la jubeant_fw-la mala_fw-la prohibeant_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la quae_fw-la pertinent_a ad_fw-la humanam_fw-la societatem_fw-la verum_fw-la etiam_fw-la quae_fw-la pertinent_a ad_fw-la divinam_fw-la religionem_fw-la aug._n contra_fw-la cresc●n_n l._n 3._o c._n 51._o that_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o king_n as_o such_o authorize_v they_o to_o make_v law_n not_o only_o in_o relation_n to_o civil_a affair_n but_o also_o in_o matter_n appertain_v to_o divine_a religion_n in_o pursuance_n of_o which_o 2_o as_o to_o the_o power_n of_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v make_v law_n not_o only_o concern_v the_o external_n regimen_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o concern_v the_o proper_a function_n of_o the_o clergy_n namely_o the_o key_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n so_o far_o as_o to_o regulate_v the_o use_n of_o they_o and_o oblige_v the_o person_n entrust_v with_o they_o to_o perform_v their_o respective_a office_n be_v evident_a to_o any_o one_o who_o shall_v think_v it_o worth_a his_o leisure_n to_o peruse_v such_o law_n yet_o extant_a a_o collection_n of_o the_o law_n make_v by_o ina_n alfred_n edward_n ethelstan_n edmund_n edgar_z ethelred_n canutus_n and_o other_o we_o have_v publish_v by_o mr._n lambard_n in_o which_o we_o meet_v with_o sanction_n concern_v faith_n baptism_n sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n bishop_n priest_n marriage_n observance_n of_o lent_n appoint_v of_o festival_n and_o the_o like_a and_o here_o it_o may_v not_o be_v unseasonable_a to_o urge_v a_o authority_n which_o our_o editor_n can_v just_o decline_v i_o mean_v mr._n spelman_n jun._n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la alfredi_n write_v by_o he_o in_o english_a but_o publish_a in_o latin_a by_o the_o master_n of_o university_n college_n in_o oxford_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o alumni_fw-la of_o that_o society_n this_o author_n speak_v of_o the_o law_n make_v by_o king_n alfred_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a make_v this_o inference_n from_o they_o 12._o they_o hae_fw-la leges_fw-la hactenus_fw-la observationem_fw-la merentur_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la iis_fw-la constat_fw-la etiam_fw-la illis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la reges_fw-la saxonicos_fw-la alfredum_fw-la &_o edvardum_fw-la sensisse_fw-la se_fw-la suprematum_fw-la habere_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o ecclesiasticos_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o laicos_fw-la neque_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o ipsorum_fw-la ditione_n esset_fw-la esse_fw-la quid_fw-la peregrinum_fw-la vel_fw-la principi_fw-la alicui_fw-la extraneo_fw-la subditam_fw-la domi_fw-la autem_fw-la civitatis_fw-la legibus_fw-la solutam_fw-la quod_fw-la anselmus_fw-la beckettus_n aliique_fw-la deinceps_fw-la insecuti_fw-la acriter_fw-la eontenderunt_fw-la vita_fw-la alfr._n lib._n 2._o par_fw-fr 12._o these_o law_n do_v therefore_o deserve_v our_o particular_a observation_n because_o from_o they_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o
and_o appointment_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n assert_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o clergy_n in_o the_o first_o thesis_n have_v reference_n to_o the_o thing_n only_o of_o the_o next_o world_n but_o the_o censure_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v such_o as_o have_v reference_n to_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n the_o habitual_a jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n flow_v we_o confess_v from_o their_o ordination_n but_o the_o actual_a exercise_n thereof_o in_o public_a court_n after_o a_o coercive_a manner_n be_v from_o the_o gracious_a concession_n of_o sovereign_a prince_n from_o the_o one_a and_o 2d_o thesis_n he_o far_o condemn_v the_o take_v away_o the_o patriarch_n authority_n for_o receive_v of_o appeals_n 99_o pag._n 99_o and_o exercise_v final_a judicature_n in_o spiritual_a controversy_n as_o also_o the_o take_v away_o the_o final_a judge_n and_o decision_n of_o such_o controversy_n not_o only_o from_o the_o patriarch_n in_o particular_a but_o also_o from_o all_o the_o clergy_n in_o general_n not_o make_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n or_o convocation_n but_o himself_o or_o his_o substitute_n the_o judge_n thereof_o for_o which_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o stat._n 25._o h._n 8.19_o c._n but_o in_o that_o statute_n i_o find_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o patriarch_n or_o spiritual_a controversy_n but_o only_o that_o in_o cause_n of_o contention_n have_v their_o commencement_n within_o the_o court_n of_o this_o realm_n no_o appeal_n shall_v be_v make_v out_o of_o it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o for_o want_v of_o justice_n in_o his_o court_n to_o the_o king_n in_o chancery_n upon_o which_o a_o commission_n shall_v be_v direct_v to_o such_o person_n as_o shall_v be_v appoint_v by_o the_o king_n definitive_o to_o determine_v such_o appeals_n here_o be_v nothing_o of_o determine_v controversy_n in_o pure_a matter_n of_o religion_n of_o decide_v what_o be_v god_n word_n and_o divine_a truth_n what_o be_v error_n in_o the_o faith_n or_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o service_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o other_o spiritual_a power_n by_o he_o enumerate_v in_o the_o one_a thesis_n or_o if_o any_o such_o quaestion_n shall_v be_v involve_v in_o the_o cause_n to_o be_v try_v why_o may_v not_o the_o commissioner_n if_o secular_a judge_v according_a to_o what_o have_v be_v praedetermine_v by_o the_o clergy_n or_o let_v we_o suppose_v a_o case_n never_o yet_o determine_v how_o do_v he_o prove_v a_o power_n of_o judge_v in_o such_o cause_n transfer_v on_o secular_a person_n since_o if_o occasion_n require_v the_o delegate_n may_v be_v person_n ecclesiastical_a but_o not_o only_o the_o act_n of_o state_n and_o church_n but_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o doctor_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o his_o test_n and_o therefore_o from_o the_o same_o thesis_n he_o censure_v that_o assertion_n of_o dr._n heylin_n 6._o heylin_n heylins_n ref._n justify_v part_n 1._o §._o 6._o 240._o p_o 240._o that_o it_o be_v neither_o fit_a nor_o reasonable_a that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v be_v able_a by_o their_o synodical_a act_n to_o conclude_v both_o prince_n and_o people_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n until_o the_o stamp_n of_o royal_a authority_n be_v imprint_v on_o they_o now_o it_o be_v plain_a to_o any_o one_o that_o view_v the_o context_n that_o the_o dr._n speak_v of_o such_o a_o conclude_v the_o prince_n and_o people_n in_o matter_n spiritual_a as_o have_v influence_n on_o their_o civil_a right_n for_o he_o there_o discourse_n of_o the_o clergy_n under_o king_n henry_n oblige_v themselves_o not_o to_o execute_v those_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n without_o the_o king_n consent_n which_o former_o they_o have_v put_v in_o execution_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n but_o the_o canon_n so_o execute_v have_v the_o force_n of_o civil_a law_n and_o the_o violator_n of_o they_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o secular_a punishment_n the_o dr._n therefore_o very_o just_o think_v it_o unreasonable_a any_o shall_v be_v liable_a to_o such_o punishment_n without_o his_o consent_n who_o only_o have_v the_o power_n of_o inflict_v they_o nor_o be_v this_o inconsistent_a with_o our_o author_n first_o thesis_n have_v he_o at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n remember_v it_o which_o extend_v church-autority_n only_o to_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n which_o have_v reference_n to_o thing_n not_o of_o this_o but_o the_o next_o world_n these_o be_v the_o inference_n which_o i_o find_v deduce_v from_o his_o first_o and_o second_o thesis_n in_o the_o several_a part_n of_o this_o discourse_n which_o have_v they_o be_v as_o conclusive_a as_o they_o be_v false_a yet_o i_o do_v not_o find_v but_o that_o his_o own_o party_n if_o that_o be_v the_o roman_n catholic_n have_v suffer_v most_o by_o they_o for_o if_o the_o supremacy_n give_v to_o king_n henry_n be_v so_o great_a a_o invasion_n of_o the_o church_n right_a what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o that_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n who_o so_o sacrilegious_o invest_v he_o with_o this_o spiritual_a power_n if_o that_o synodical_a act_n be_v betray_v the_o trust_n which_o the_o clergy_n have_v receive_v from_o christ_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o those_o pastor_n who_o so_o unfaithful_o manage_v the_o depositum_fw-la of_o their_o saviour_n if_o deny_v the_o pope_n authority_n be_v so_o piacular_a a_o crime_n what_o opinion_n shall_v we_o entertain_v of_o those_o religious_a person_n in_o monastery_n who_o profess_v a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a sanctity_n and_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o strict_a vow_n of_o obedience_n so_o 182._o so_o burn_v ref._n l._n 3._o p._n 182._o resolute_o abjure_v it_o what_o of_o those_o learned_a in_o the_o 259._o the_o convocatis_fw-la undique_fw-la dictae_fw-la academiae_fw-la theologis_fw-la habitoque_fw-la complurium_fw-la biorum_fw-la spatio_fw-la ac_fw-la deliberandi_fw-la tempore_fw-la sasatis_fw-la amplo_fw-la quo_fw-la interim_n cum_fw-la omni_fw-la qua_fw-la potuimus_fw-la diligentia_fw-la justitiae_fw-la zelo_fw-la religione_fw-la &_o conscientia_fw-la incorrupta_fw-la perscruta_fw-la remur_fw-la tam_fw-la sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la libros_fw-la quam_fw-la super_fw-la iisdem_fw-la approbatissimos_fw-la interpretes_n &_o eos_fw-la quidem_fw-la saepe_fw-la &_o saepius_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la evolutos_fw-la &_o exactissime_fw-la collatos_fw-la repetitos_fw-la &_o examinatos_fw-la deinde_fw-la &_o disputationibus_fw-la solennibus_fw-la palam_fw-la ac_fw-la publicae_fw-la habitis_fw-la &_o celebratis_fw-la tandem_fw-la in_o hanc_fw-la sententiam_fw-la unanimiter_fw-la omnes_fw-la convenimus_fw-la ac_fw-la concord_n fuimus_fw-la viz._n romanum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la majorem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la sibi_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la collatam_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la angliae_fw-la quam_fw-la alium_fw-la quemvis_fw-la episcopum_fw-la antiq._n oxon_n lib._n 1._o pag._n 259._o university_n who_o after_o a_o solemn_a debate_n and_o serious_a disquisition_n of_o the_o cause_n so_o peremptory_o define_v against_o it_o what_o of_o the_o 142._o the_o ref._n l._n 2._o p._n 142._o whole_a body_n of_o the_o clergy_n who_o proper_a office_n it_o be_v to_o determine_v such_o controversy_n 2._o pag._n 2._o and_o to_o judge_v what_o be_v god_n word_n and_o divine_a truth_n §_o 2_o what_o be_v error_n who_o in_o full_a synod_n so_o unanimous_o reject_v it_o what_o of_o the_o lead_a part_n of_o those_o prelate_n 137._o ibid._n p._n 137._o gardiner_n bonner_n and_o tonstal_v who_o write_v preach_v and_o frame_v oath_n against_o it_o what_o of_o the_o 144._o ibid._n p._n 144._o noble_n and_o commons_o person_n of_o presume_a integrity_n and_o honour_n who_o prepare_v the_o bill_n against_o it_o what_o last_o of_o the_o sovereign_a a_o declare_a enemy_n of_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n who_o past_o that_o bill_n into_o a_o law_n and_o guard_v the_o sanction_n of_o it_o with_o capital_a punishment_n if_o all_o these_o act_v sincere_o than_o it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a but_o of_o the_o romanists_n which_o be_v write_v against_o if_o not_o we_o seem_v to_o have_v just_a praejudices_fw-la against_o a_o religion_n which_o have_v no_o great_a influence_n over_o its_o professor_n then_o to_o suffer_v a_o whole_a nation_n of_o they_o perfidious_o to_o deny_v that_o which_o if_o it_o be_v any_o part_n be_v a_o main_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o author_n what_o shall_v we_o judge_v of_o his_o skill_n in_o controversy_n who_o from_o principle_n assume_v gratis_o draw_v deduction_n which_o by_o no_o mean_n follow_v and_o which_o if_o they_o do_v follow_v will_v be_v the_o great_a wound_n to_o that_o cause_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o patronize_v but_o because_o he_o have_v offer_v something_o under_o this_o first_o thesis_n why_o the_o prince_n shall_v pay_v a_o implicit_a obedience_n to_o his_o clergy_n i_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v it_o he_o tell_v we_o therefore_o that_o the_o prince_n profess_v himself_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o
the_o christian_n as_o to_o the_o know_v of_o spiritual_a truth_n a_o subject_a and_o scholar_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o earnest_o claim_v a_o supreme_a power_n and_o confess_v a_o obligation_n from_o god_n over_o all_o person_n in_o all_o spiritual_a matter_n to_o bind_v they_o upon_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n or_o clergy_n determination_n and_o decree_n but_o here_o he_o either_o willing_o misrepresent_v or_o ignorant_o mistake_v our_o principle_n for_o the_o prince_n claim_v a_o supreme_a power_n over_o all_o person_n to_o bind_v they_o by_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o the_o obedience_n not_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o christ_n law_n or_o of_o the_o former_a no_o far_o than_o they_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o latter_a but_o say_v he_o if_o the_o prince_n mean_v here_o only_o where_o himself_o first_o judge_v such_o their_o decree_n orthodox_n and_o right_n this_o power_n be_v in_o effect_n claim_v to_o bind_v all_o person_n in_o all_o spiritual_a matter_n only_o to_o his_o own_o decree_n whilst_o he_o praetend_v a_o obligation_n both_o of_o himself_o and_o his_o subject_n to_o the_o church_n but_o what_o if_o the_o prince_n judge_v such_o decree_v neither_o orthodox_n nor_o right_a must_v he_o here_o give_v they_o the_o authority_n of_o civil_a sanction_n this_o be_v to_o establish_v iniquity_n by_o a_o law_n and_o a_o power_n be_v claim_v in_o effect_n to_o bind_v all_o person_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o clergy_n whilst_o as_o have_v be_v say_v he_o praetend_v a_o obligation_n of_o himself_o &_o subject_n to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o text_n of_o the_o new-testament_n do_v ordain_v obedience_n of_o churchman_n to_o the_o pagan_a prince_n that_o then_o reign_v no_o less_o then_o to_o other_o from_o which_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v infer_v a_o exemption_n from_o obey_v the_o prince_n in_o spiritualibus_fw-la but_o suppose_v that_o all_o text_n do_v equal_o ordain_v obedience_n to_o prince_n pagan_a and_o christian_n yet_o the_o obedience_n to_o a_o christian_a prince_n will_v be_v of_o great_a latitude_n since_o because_o he_o profess_v the_o true_a religion_n his_o command_n in_o spiritual_n not_o contradict_v our_o saviour_n will_v exact_v our_o compliance_n obedience_n in_o licitis_fw-la be_v all_o the_o subject_a ow_n to_o a_o prince_n either_o christian_n on_o infidel_n but_o the_o christian_a prince_n will_v often_o challenge_v my_o obedience_n because_o he_o more_o rare_o transgress_v the_o bound_n of_o licita_fw-la if_o as_o he_o add_v all_o prince_n be_v oblige_v with_o the_o sword_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o to_o protect_v and_o defend_v his_o true_a religion_n and_o service_n in_o their_o dominion_n whensoever_o it_o offer_v itself_o to_o they_o since_o many_o religion_n offer_v themselves_o it_o become_v the_o prince_n to_o take_v care_n which_o be_v the_o true_a and_o not_o to_o take_v whatever_o be_v offer_v which_o will_v be_v utter_o destructive_a of_o our_o author_n principle_n as_o for_o the_o act_n of_o ancient_a council_n oblige_v even_o without_o the_o emperor_n consent_n we_o own_o their_o obligation_n over_o their_o proper_a subject_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n no_o far_o than_o as_o add_v their_o civil_a power_n to_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n and_o here_o we_o challenge_v no_o other_o power_n to_o our_o prince_n than_o be_v exercise_v by_o christian_a emperor_n that_o be_v to_o call_v synod_n and_o to_o have_v a_o liberty_n of_o confirm_v or_o not_o confirm_v their_o decree_n by_o civil_a sanction_n as_o for_o what_o he_o cite_v out_o of_o our_o writer_n all_o amount_n to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o there_o be_v some_o office_n peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n which_o neither_o do_v we_o deny_v nor_o do_v our_o prince_n ever_o invade_v these_o function_n but_o because_o from_o hence_o he_o will_v insinuate_v that_o the_o prince_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a &c_n &c_n in_o his_o citation_n from_o these_o writer_n come_v up_o to_o that_o character_n which_o the_o 86._o the_o book_n of_o educ_fw-la ox._n 1677_o p_o 86._o book_n of_o education_n give_v we_o of_o the_o sly_z the_o close_a and_o the_o reserve_v who_o take_v notice_n of_o so_o much_o at_o serve_v to_o their_o own_o design_n and_o misinterpret_v and_o detort_v what_o you_o say_v even_o contrary_a to_o your_o intention_n i_o shall_v as_o brief_o as_o may_v be_v show_v that_o their_o concession_n be_v far_o from_o give_v any_o countenance_n to_o his_o cause_n bishop_n andrews_n do_v indeed_o say_v as_o all_o other_o of_o our_o church_n potestatis_fw-la mere_a sacerdotalis_fw-la sunt_fw-la liturgiae_fw-la conciones_fw-la i_o e._n dubia_fw-la legis_fw-la explicandi_fw-la munus_fw-la clave_n sacramenta_fw-la &_o omne_fw-la quae_fw-la potestatem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la consequuntur_fw-la but_o then_o there_o be_v other_o ecclesiastical_a power_n which_o he_o challenge_v to_o the_o prince_n viz._n 380._o viz._n in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la exterioris_fw-la politiae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la praecipiat_fw-la svo_fw-la sibi_fw-la jure_fw-la vindicat_fw-la tort._n p._n 380._o to_o have_v supreme_a command_n in_o the_o exterior_a polity_n of_o the_o church_n 381._o church_n custos_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la modo_fw-la secunadae_fw-la tabulae_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o primae_fw-la p._n 381._o to_o be_v keeper_n of_o both_o table_n ib._n table_n quodcunque_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la religionis_fw-la reges_fw-la israel_n fecerunt_fw-la id_fw-la ut_fw-la ei_o faciendi_fw-la jus_o sit_fw-la ac_fw-la potestas_fw-la ib._n to_o exercise_v all_o that_o power_n which_o the_o good_a king_n of_o israel_n do_v ib._n do_v leges_fw-la autoritate_fw-la regius_fw-la ferendi_fw-la ne_fw-la blasphemetur_fw-la deus_fw-la ut_fw-la jejunio_fw-la placetur_fw-la deus_fw-la ut_fw-la festo_fw-la honoretur_fw-la ib._n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o ib._n to_o delegandi_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la lege_fw-la sic_fw-la lata_fw-la judicent_fw-la ib._n delegate_v person_n to_o judge_v in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a to_o ib._n to_o siqui_fw-la in_o leges_fw-la ita_fw-la latas_fw-la committant_fw-la etsi_fw-la religionis_fw-la causa_fw-la sit_fw-la in_fw-la eos_fw-la autoritate_fw-la regius_fw-la animadvertendi_fw-la ib._n punish_v the_o breach_n of_o those_o spiritual_a law_n to_o ib._n to_o non_fw-la ut_fw-la totus_fw-la ab_fw-la lieno_fw-la ore_fw-la pendeat_fw-la ipse_fw-la à_fw-la se_fw-la nihil_fw-la dijudicer_n ib._n learn_v the_o will_n of_o god_n not_o only_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o also_o from_o the_o scripture_n to_o ib._n to_o omnibus_fw-la omnium_fw-la ordinum_fw-la jus_o dicendi_fw-la ib._n have_v authority_n over_o all_o person_n to_o 382._o to_o abiathar_n ipsum_fw-la si_fw-la ita_fw-la meruit_fw-la pontificatu_fw-la abdicandi_fw-la 382._o eject_v even_o the_o high_a priest_n if_o he_o deserve_v it_o to_o ib._n to_o excelsa_fw-la diruendi_fw-la i_o e._n peregrinum_fw-la cultum_fw-la abolendi_fw-la ib._n pull_v down_o high-place_n ib._n high-place_n sive_z in_o idololatriam_fw-la abeat_fw-la vitulus_n aureus_fw-la sive_fw-la in_o superstitionem_fw-la serpens_fw-la aeneus_fw-la utrumque_fw-la comminuendi_fw-la ib._n and_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n from_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n these_o he_o claim_v to_o appertain_v to_o the_o prince_n ib._n prince_n haec_fw-la primatus_fw-la a_o put_fw-mi nos_fw-la jura_fw-la sunt_fw-la ex_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la ib._n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la the_o next_o author_n be_v dr._n carlion_n he_o among_o other_o right_n of_o the_o church_n reckon_v institution_n and_o collation_n of_o benefice_n which_o this_o writer_n mark_n with_o italian_a character_n and_o make_v much_o use_n of_o but_o this_o apostolical_a institution_n and_o collation_n by_o the_o bishop_n allude_v to_o do_v also_o involve_v in_o it_o ordination_n even_o as_o the_o ordination_n which_o be_v observe_v by_o himself_o 13._o himself_o pag._n 13._o from_o the_o bishop_n signify_v also_o institution_n in_o the_o charge_n and_o cure_v but_o the_o collation_n challenge_v by_o our_o prince_n be_v of_o another_o nature_n and_o signify_v no_o more_o than_o the_o nominate_v a_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v to_o such_o a_o office_n or_o present_v a_o person_n already_o ordain_v to_o such_o a_o benefice_n and_o the_o right_n of_o investiture_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o such_o a_o collation_n be_v by_o this_o bishop_n 137._o bishop_n jurisd_v ●eg_v ep._n p._n 137._o assert_v to_o emperor_n this_o be_v clear_v which_o be_v by_o he_o on_o purpose_n perplex_v if_o we_o take_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o regal_a power_n from_o this_o bishop_n he_o tell_v 10._o tell_v id._n p._n 10._o we_o that_o sovereign_n as_o nurse_n father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o see_v that_o bishop_n and_o all_o inferior_a minister_n perform_v their_o faithful_a duty_n in_o their_o several_a place_n and_o if_o they_o be_v find_v faulty_a to_o punish_v they_o his_o next_o author_n be_v mr._n thorndike_n who_o be_v as_o large_a
as_o any_o one_o in_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n right_n and_o yet_o he_o tell_v we_o 391._o we_o epilog_n pag._n 391._o that_o no-man_n will_v refuse_v christian_a prince_n the_o interest_n of_o protect_v the_o church_n against_o all_o such_o act_n as_o may_v prove_v praejudicial_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n he_o hold_v as_o this_o writer_n with_o great_a concern_n 390._o concern_n church_n government_n pag._n 390._o observe_v that_o the_o secular_a power_n may_v restore_v any_o law_n which_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n have_v ordain_v not_o only_o against_o a_o major_a part_n but_o all_o the_o clergy_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o may_v for_o a_o paenalty_n of_o their_o oppose_v it_o suppress_v their_o power_n and_o commit_v it_o to_o other_o though_o they_o also_o be_v establish_v by_o another_o law_n apostolical_a thus_o that_o considerative_a man_n who_o hold_v not_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n or_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v follower_n of_o antichrist_n 391._o antichrist_n church_n government_n pag._n 391._o bishop_n taylour_n his_o next_o author_n do_v with_o the_o rest_n assert_v that_o the_o episcopal_a office_n have_v some_o power_n annex_v to_o it_o independent_a on_o the_o regal_a but_o than_o he_o far_o lay_v down_o these_o rule_n 4._o rule_n ductor_n dub._n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o r._n 4._o that_o the_o supreme_a civil-power_n be_v also_o supreme_a governor_n over_o all_o person_n and_o in_o all_o cause_n 5._o cause_n ibid._n r._n 5._o have_v a_o legislative_a power_n in_o affair_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n 7._o church_n ibid._n r._n 7._o have_v jurisdiction_n in_o cause_n not_o only_o ecclesiastical_a but_o also_o internal_a and_o spiritual_a 9_o spiritual_a ibid._n r._n 7._o n._n 9_o have_v authority_n to_o convene_v and_o dissolve_v all_o synod_n ecclesiastical_a 8._o ecclesiastical_a ibid._n r._n 8._o be_v indeed_o to_o govern_v in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a by_o the_o mean_n and_o measure_n of_o christ_n institution_n i._n e._n by_o the_o assistance_n and_o ministry_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n 6._o person_n ibid._n r._n 8._o n._n 6._o but_o that_o there_o may_v happen_v a_o case_n in_o which_o prince_n may_v and_o must_v refuse_v to_o confirm_v the_o synodical_a decree_n sentence_n and_o judgement_n of_o ecclesiastic_o 8._o ecclesiastic_o ibid._n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o r._n 8._o that_o censure_v ecclesiastical_a be_v to_o be_v inflict_v by_o the_o consent_n and_o concurrence_n of_o the_o supreme_a civil_a power_n the_o next_o author_n cite_v be_v the_o learned_a primate_n bramhal_o and_o we_o have_v here_o reason_n to_o wonder_v that_o one_o who_o praetend_v to_o have_v be_v conversant_a in_o his_o write_n dare_v appear_v in_o the_o vindication_n of_o a_o cause_n which_o the_o learned_a author_n have_v so_o long_o since_o so_o shameful_o defeat_v as_o for_o the_o right_n of_o sovereign_a prince_n this_o archbishop_n will_v tell_v 88_o tell_v bp._n br._n work_v tom._n 1._o p._n 88_o he_o that_o to_o affirm_v that_o sovereign_a prince_n can_v make_v ecclesiastical_a constitution_n under_o a_o civil_a pain_n or_o that_o they_o can_v especial_o with_o the_o advice_n and_o concurrence_n of_o their_o clergy_n assemble_v in_o a_o national_a synod_n reform_v error_n and_o abuse_n and_o remedy_n encroachment_n and_o usurpation_n in_o faith_n or_o discipline_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o practice_v of_o all_o antiquity_n and_o as_o for_o matter_n of_o fact_n he_o will_v instruct_v he_o 76._o he_o ibid._n p._n 76._o that_o our_o king_n from_o time_n to_o time_n call_v council_n make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n punish_v ecclesiastical_a person_n see_v that_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n in_o their_o calling_n etc._n etc._n from_o this_o bishop_n acknowledgement_n that_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o proper_a judge_n of_o the_o canon_n this_o author_n that_o he_o may_v according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o a_o 98._o a_o educ_fw-la p._n 98._o modern_a pen_n as_o well_o waken_v the_o taciturn_n with_o quaestion_n as_o silence_v the_o loquacious_a with_o baffle_a fallacy_n take_v occasion_n brisk_o to_o ask_v whether_o this_o bishop_n do_v not_o mean_a here_o that_o the_o bishop_n may_v both_o compose_v and_o execute_v canon_n in_o the_o king_n dominion_n and_o use_v ecclesiastical_a censure_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n but_o see_v say_v he_o the_o bishop_n deprive_v of_o the_o former_a power_n in_o the_o reformation_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o power_n of_o which_o they_o be_v deprive_v in_o the_o reformation_n be_v only_o of_o such_o a_o execute_v the_o canon_n as_o carry_v with_o it_o pecuniary_a and_o corporal_a punishment_n and_o this_o power_n the_o bishop_n have_v tell_v he_o they_o can_v not_o exercise_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n and_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o our_o author_n in_o read_v this_o bishop_n work_n have_v make_v use_n of_o his_o advice_n 156._o advice_n ibid._n p._n 156._o to_o cite_v author_n full_o and_o faithful_o not_o by_o half_n without_o add_v to_o or_o new_o mould_v their_o autority_n according_a to_o fancy_n or_o interest_n the_o next_o advocate_n against_o regal_a supremacy_n be_v king_n charles_n the_o first_o but_o if_o we_o may_v take_v a_o draught_n of_o that_o bless_a martyr_n sentiment_n from_o his_o own_o portraiture_n wales_n portraiture_n e_o i_o k._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d adu._n to_o the_o pr._n of_o wales_n he_o do_v not_o think_v his_o authority_n confine_v to_o civil_a affair_n but_o that_o the_o true_a glory_n of_o prince_n consist_v as_o well_o in_o advance_v god_n glory_n in_o the_o maintenance_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o church_n good_a as_o in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o civil_a power_n with_o justice_n and_o honour_n to_o the_o public_a peace_n 17._o peace_n ibid._n cap._n 17._o he_o think_v himself_o as_o king_n entrust_v by_o god_n and_o the_o law_n with_o the_o good_a both_o of_o church_n and_o state_n and_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v give_v up_o or_o weaken_v by_o any_o change_n that_o power_n and_o influence_n which_o in_o right_n and_o reason_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v over_o both_o he_o think_v himself_o oblige_v to_o preserve_v the_o episcopal_a government_n in_o its_o right_a constitution_n not_o because_o his_o bishop_n tell_v he_o so_o but_o because_o his_o judgement_n be_v full_o satisfy_v that_o it_o have_v of_o all_o other_o the_o best_a scripture_n ground_n and_o also_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o christian_a church_n he_o be_v no_o friend_n of_o implicit_a obedience_n but_o after_o he_o have_v tell_v the_o prince_n wales_n prince_n adu._n to_o the_o pr._n of_o wales_n that_o the_o best_a profession_n of_o religion_n be_v that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n add_v i_o will_v have_v your_o own_o judgement_n and_o reason_n now_o seal_v to_o that_o sacred_a bond_n which_o education_n have_v write_v that_o it_o may_v be_v judicious_o your_o own_o religion_n and_o not_o other_o man_n custom_n or_o tradition_n which_o you_o profess_v he_o do_v not_o give_v that_o glorious_a testimony_n to_o the_o religion_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o it_o be_v the_o best_a in_o the_o world_n not_o only_o in_o the_o community_n as_o christian_a but_o also_o in_o the_o special_a notion_n as_o reform_v and_o for_o this_o reason_n reqwire_v and_o entreat_v the_o prince_n as_o his_o father_n and_o his_o king_n that_o he_o will_v never_o suffer_v his_o heart_n to_o receive_v the_o least_o check_n against_o or_o disaffection_n from_o it_o till_o he_o have_v first_o try_v it_o and_o after_o much_o search_n and_o many_o dispute_v thus_o conclude_v these_o be_v the_o sentiment_n of_o our_o author_n in_o which_o if_o i_o have_v be_v overlong_a the_o reader_n will_v excuse_v i_o that_o i_o choose_v rather_o to_o intermix_v something_o useful_a from_o these_o great_a pen_n then_o to_o entertain_v he_o altogether_o with_o the_o paralogism_n and_o prevarication_n of_o this_o writer_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o remain_v considerable_a under_o this_o first_o thesis_n but_o his_o sub-sumption_a that_o whatever_o power_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o before_o emperor_n have_v embrace_v christianity_n be_v and_o must_v still_o be_v allow_v to_o belong_v to_o she_o in_o christian_a state_n which_o i_o conceive_v not_o altogether_o so_o necessary_a that_o it_o must_v be_v allow_v and_o i_o be_o sure_a by_o our_o author_n it_o be_v not_o as_o for_o convening_n of_o council_n the_o power_n of_o great_a concern_n bishop_n assembly_n bishop_n serm._n of_o the_o right_n of_o assembly_n andrews_n to_o this_o quaestion_a what_o say_v you_o to_o the_o 300_o year_n before_o constantine_n how_o go_v assembly_n then_o who_o call_v they_o all_o that_o while_n return_v this_o answer_n true_o as_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v before_o in_o egypt_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o pharaoh_n they_o be_v
in_o this_o matter_n as_o for_o this_o objection_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v awe_v by_o fear_n in_o this_o act_n he_o himself_o have_v unlucky_o cite_v a_o passage_n from_o the_o then_o lady_n mary_n which_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o it_o 142._o p._n 142._o i_o be_o well_o assure_v say_v she_o speak_v of_o edward_n vi_o in_o her_o letter_n to_o the_o council_n that_o the_o king_n his_o father_n law_n be_v consent_v to_o without_o compulsion_n by_o the_o whole_a realm_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o more_o to_o this_o thesis_n but_o oppose_v another_o to_o it_o that_o can_v a_o ecumenical_a synod_n make_v definition_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o that_o a_o synod_n want_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_a bishop_n unjust_o exclude_v and_o consist_v partly_o of_o person_n unjust_o introduce_v partly_o of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v first_o bribe_v with_o money_n and_o promise_n of_o church-praeferment_a or_o praeengage_v by_o oath_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o usurpation_n of_o a_o pretend_v spiritual_a monarch_n be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v a_o lawful_a ecumenical_a synod_n nor_o the_o act_n thereof_o free_a and_o valid_a especial_o as_o to_o their_o establish_v such_o usurpation_n this_o be_v a_o thesis_n which_o need_v no_o application_n i_o proceed_v to_o his_o six_o thesis_n that_o the_o judgement_n and_o consent_n of_o some_o clergyman_n of_o a_o province_n when_o they_o be_v the_o lesser_a part_n can_v be_v call_v the_o judgement_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o the_o province_n this_o assertion_n that_o a_o lesser_a part_n be_v not_o equal_a to_o the_o whole_a be_v the_o only_a thing_n which_o look_v like_o mathematics_n in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n and_o the_o reader_n may_v hence_o be_v convince_v that_o our_o author_n do_v sometime_o travel_v in_o the_o 119._o the_o educ_fw-la p._n 119._o high_a road_n of_o demonstration_n but_o here_o we_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v prove_v either_o that_o the_o reformation_n be_v not_o effect_v by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o that_o a_o minor_a part_n judge_v according_a to_o truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v rather_o than_o the_o major_a part_n judge_v contrary_a to_o it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v easy_o reply_v that_o the_o judgement_n and_o consent_n of_o some_o few_o bishop_n 153._o bishop_n soave_fw-it hist_n conc._n tr._n p._n 153._o suppose_n 48._o bishop_n and_o 5._o cardinal_n give_v canonical_a authority_n to_o book_n apocryphal_a and_o make_v authentical_a a_o translation_n differ_v from_o the_o original_a can_v be_v esteem_v the_o judgement_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n seven_o thesis_n that_o since_o a_o national_a synod_n may_v not_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n contrary_a to_o former_a superior_a council_n much_o less_o may_v any_o secular_a person_n define_v contrary_a to_o those_o council_n or_o also_o to_o a_o national_a synod_n the_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n we_o allow_v to_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o because_o every_o one_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o own_o faith_n every_o one_o be_v oblige_v to_o take_v care_n that_o what_o he_o submit_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o be_v consistent_a with_o his_o christianity_n i_o be_o oblige_v to_o pay_v all_o submission_n to_o the_o church-autority_n but_o the_o church_n have_v bound_n within_o which_o she_o ought_v to_o be_v restrain_v in_o her_o determination_n if_o she_o transgress_v these_o limit_n and_o act_n against_o that_o christianity_n which_o she_o profess_v to_o maintain_v i_o may_v rather_o refuse_v obedience_n then_o forfeit_v my_o christianity_n if_o in_o a_o cause_n of_o this_o moment_n i_o make_v a_o wrong_a judgement_n i_o be_o answerable_a for_o it_o at_o god_n tribunal_n not_o because_o i_o usurp_v a_o right_a which_o be_v never_o grant_v i_o but_o because_o i_o misuse_v a_o liberty_n which_o be_v indulge_v i_o this_o we_o take_v to_o be_v the_o case_n of_o each_o private_a christian_a and_o far_o that_o the_o prince_n have_v a_o obligation_n not_o only_o to_o believe_v a-right_a and_o worship_n god_n as_o be_v praescribe_v himself_o but_o also_o to_o protect_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n in_o his_o dominion_n aught_o to_o use_v all_o those_o mean_n of_o discover_v the_o truth_n which_o god_n have_v afford_v viz._n consult_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o have_v discover_v it_o he_o may_v promulgate_v it_o to_o his_o subject_n by_o they_o also_o to_o be_v embrace_v but_o not_o without_o the_o use_n of_o that_o judgement_n and_o discretion_n which_o to_o they_o also_o be_v allow_v if_o here_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n command_v thing_n contrary_a there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o subject_a but_o to_o inquire_v on_o which_o side_n god_n be_v and_o if_o god_n be_v on_o the_o king_n side_n by_o a_o direct_a law_n in_o the_o matter_n he_o be_v not_o on_o the_o church_n side_n for_o her_o spiritual_a authority_n thus_o a_o good_a king_n of_o israel_n may_v 38.22_o may_v 2_o king_n 38.22_o take_v away_o the_o high_a place_n and_o altar_n and_o say_v unto_o judah_n and_o jerusalem_n you_o shall_v worship_n before_o the_o altar_n at_o jerusalem_n because_o such_o a_o command_n be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o praejudice_n against_o it_o 23.9_o it_o 2_o king_n 23.9_o that_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n refuse_v to_o come_v up_o to_o the_o altar_n at_o jerusalem_n thus_o may_v king_n alfred_n restore_v to_o the_o decalogue_n and_o to_o its_o obligation_n the_o non_fw-la tibi_fw-la facies_fw-la deos_fw-la aureos_fw-la though_o veneration_n of_o image_n be_v command_v by_o the_o second_o nicene_n synod_n and_o though_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o trent_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o repeal_v our_o saviour_n institution_n yet_o king_n edward_n may_v revive_v the_o ancient_a statute_n 26.27_o statute_n mat._n 26.27_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o for_o his_o eight_o thesis_n it_o have_v already_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v felo_fw-la de_fw-la se_fw-la and_o that_o the_o limitation_n destroy_v whatever_o the_o proposition_n will_v have_v establish_v when_o the_o gallican_n church_n shall_v have_v receive_v all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n observe_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o first_o general_n council_n when_o the_o western_a patriach_n shall_v have_v rechange_v his_o regalia_z petri_n into_o the_o old_a regulas_fw-la patrum_fw-la it_o may_v then_o be_v seasonable_a to_o examine_v how_o far_o national_a church_n be_v oblige_v by_o thing_n of_o mere_a ecclesiastical_a constitution_n i_o shall_v now_o proceed_v to_o examine_v the_o historical_a part_n of_o his_o discourse_n but_o that_o i_o understand_v be_v already_o under_o the_o consideration_n of_o another_o hand_n from_o which_o the_o reader_n may_v short_o expect_v a_o satisfactory_a account_n but_o i_o may_v not_o omit_v for_o the_o reader_n be_v diversion_n a_o grammatical_a criticism_n which_o our_o author_n have_v make_v upon_o the_o little_a particle_n as_o 38._o pag._n 38._o it_o be_v enact_v the_o 32d_o hen._n 8.26_o c._n that_o all_o such_o determination_n decree_n definition_n and_o ordinance_n as_o according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o christ_n gospel_n shall_v at_o any_o time_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n appoint_v by_o his_o majesty_n or_o else_o by_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o england_n in_o and_o upon_o the_o matter_n of_o christ_n religion_n etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v by_o all_o his_o grace_n subject_n full_o believe_v obey_v etc._n etc._n upon_o which_o he_o make_v this_o learned_a note_n whereas_o under_o the_o reformation_n private_a man_n be_v tie_v only_o to_o obey_v and_o believe_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n when_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o according_a to_o god_n word_n i_o e._n when_o private_a man_n think_v they_o to_o be_v so_o yet_o here_o this_o liberty_n be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v restrain_v and_o private_a man_n tie_v to_o believe_v these_o definition_n when_o set_v forth_o as_o according_a to_o god_n word_n i_o e._n when_o the_o setter_n forth_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v so_o to_o obey_v a_o thing_n define_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o to_o obey_v a_o thing_n define_v as_o be_v according_a to_o god_n word_n be_v injunction_n very_o different_a now_o a_o little_a skill_n in_o honest_a walker_n particle_n will_v have_v clear_v this_o point_n and_o a_o schoolboy_n that_o be_v to_o turn_v this_o passage_n into_o latin_a will_v have_v know_v that_o as_o be_v put_v for_o which_o according_o keble_n abridge_n this_o statute_n make_v it_o run_v thus_o all_o decree_n and_o ordinance_n which_o according_a to_o god_n word_n etc._n
etc._n but_o this_o it_o be_v for_o people_n to_o meddle_v in_o controversy_n at_o a_o age_n when_o they_o have_v forget_v their_o grammar_n notwithstanding_o therefore_o this_o aristarchus_n we_o still_o retain_v the_o liberty_n of_o believe_v and_o obey_v only_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v define_v according_a to_o god_n word_n for_o which_o we_o be_v much_o blame_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o discourse_n 260._o discourse_n p._n 260._o in_o rejection_n of_o the_o church_n judgement_n say_v he_o let_v none_o think_v himself_o secure_a in_o rely_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o conscience_n or_o judgement_n but_o what_o reason_n soever_o he_o may_v have_v to_o undervalue_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n we_o think_v it_o advisable_v from_o st._n paul_n 19_o paul_n 1_o tim._n c._n 1._o v._n 19_o to_o hold_v faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n which_o some_o have_v put_v away_o concern_v faith_n have_v make_v shipwreck_n of_o who_o be_v but_o say_v he_o let_v none_o think_v himself_o secure_a in_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n so_o long_o as_o his_o conscience_n witness_v still_o to_o he_o this_o one_o thing_n namely_o his_o disobedience_n and_o inconformity_n to_o the_o church-catholic_a but_o our_o conscience_n do_v not_o witness_v to_o we_o any_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church-catholic_a but_o only_o to_o that_o church_n which_o false_o praetend_v to_o be_v catholic_a he_o mean_v to_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o guide_n thereof_o but_o the_o cause_n have_v not_o yet_o be_v decide_v by_o poll_n that_o we_o shall_v know_v which_o side_n have_v the_o majority_n let_v he_o know_v that_o his_o condition_n be_v very_o dangerous_a when_o he_o make_v the_o church-guide_n of_o his_o own_o time_n or_o the_o major_a part_n thereof_o incommunicable-with_a in_o their_o external_a profession_n of_o religion_n there_o be_v a_o time_n then_o when_o to_o believe_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n be_v a_o dangerous_a condition_n and_o this_o perhaps_o make_v pope_n liberius_n external_o to_o profess_v arrianism_n when_o for_o the_o maintain_n of_o his_o opinion_n he_o begin_v to_o distinguish_v and_o divide_v between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o why_o not_o distinguish_v where_o the_o church_n herself_o distinguish_v and_o say_v christ_n indeed_o in_o the_o scripture_n institute_v so_o but_o i_o institute_v otherwise_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o deny_v the_o cup._n between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o former_a age_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o present_a but_o here_o again_o the_o church_n herself_o distinguish_v when_o she_o tell_v we_o that_o 13._o that_o conc._n const_n sess_n 13._o licet_fw-la in_o primitiva_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la reciperetur_fw-la yet_o now_o the_o contrary_a custom_n habenda_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la lege_fw-la quam_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la reprobare_fw-la between_o the_o church_n orthodoxness_n in_o necessary_n and_o non-necessaries_a to_o salvation_n if_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o why_o do_v a_o 56._o a_o guide_v in_o controu._n disc_n 1_o c._n 6._o par_fw-fr 56._o friend_n of_o the_o author_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o obedience_n of_o assent_n in_o the_o one_o but_o of_o non-contradition_a only_o in_o the_o other_o when_o he_o begin_v to_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o inferior_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n against_o a_o superior_a but_o what_o if_o this_o be_v only_o where_o the_o inferior_a judge_n agree_v thou_o not_o with_o his_o immediate_a superior_a yet_o with_o the_o supreme_a or_o of_o a_o minor_a part_n of_o the_o church-guide_n against_o a_o major_n but_o that_o be_v not_o a_o case_n yet_o fair_o decide_v when_o they_o grant_v that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o beside_o the_o scripture_n guide_v of_o their_o faith_n but_o those_o guide_n themselves_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o they_o have_v in_o their_o judgement_n depart_v from_o those_o guide_n i_o e._n the_o major_a part_n of_o they_o but_o this_o we_o will_v have_v prove_v which_o in_o a_o court_n consist_v of_o mapy_n be_v the_o legal_a judge_n guide_n and_o judge_n be_v different_a thing_n but_o we_o hope_v when_o this_o court_n sit_v the_o judge_n will_v consult_v the_o scripture_n the_o statute_n they_o be_v to_o go_v by_o and_o if_o they_o judge_v according_a to_o that_o they_o will_v judge_v well_o these_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o blind-obedience_n which_o this_o author_n so_o studious_o inculcate_n for_o since_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v we_o different_a from_o scripture_n we_o be_v advise_v to_o use_v another_o way_n of_o discern_a doctrine_n than_o what_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v our_o saviour_n bid_v we_o 16.6.12_o mat._n 16.6.12_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n i_o e._n the_o doctrine_n of_o pharisee'_v though_o sit_v in_o moses_n his_o chair_n we_o be_v now_o advise_v to_o embrace_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n christ_n bid_v we_o 24.4_o we_o mat._n 24.4_o take_v heed_n that_o no_o man_n deceive_v we_o though_o come_v in_o his_o name_n we_o be_v now_o tell_v that_o they_o who_o come_v to_o we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n can_v deceive_v we_o st._n paul_n say_v 1.8_o say_v gal._n 1.8_o that_o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v to_o we_o any_o other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o he_o preach_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v now_o if_o we_o do_v not_o embrace_v whatever_o a_o patriarch_n from_o the_o west_n preach_v though_o never_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n we_o be_v conclude_v under_o a_o anathema_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o 1.24_o they_o 2_o cor._n 1.24_o have_v no_o dominion_n over_o our_o faith_n but_o their_o successor_n exercise_v a_o despotic_a power_n in_o require_v a_o servile_a obedience_n to_o all_o their_o dictate_v s._n paul_n practice_n be_v to_o 2.11.14_o to_o gal._n 2.11.14_o withstand_v peter_n to_o the_o face_n when_o he_o see_v that_o he_o walk_v not_o upright_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o st._n peter_n successor_n plead_v that_o in_o no_o case_n he_o may_v be_v withstand_v because_o it_o be_v impossible_a but_o that_o he_o shall_v walk_v upright_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o inspire_v divine_a bid_v we_o 18.4_o we_o rev._n 18.4_o come_v out_o of_o babylon_n that_o we_o may_v not_o partake_v of_o her_o sin_n our_o modern_a theologist_n advise_v we_o to_o come_v back_o into_o 2._o into_o babylonia_n apud_fw-la joannem_fw-la romanae_fw-la vrbis_fw-la figura_fw-la est_fw-la tertul._n adv_o marc._n l._n 3._o c._n 13._o roma_fw-it quasi_fw-la secunda_fw-la babylonia_n est_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la l._n 18._o c._n 2._o babylon_n for_o that_o she_o only_o be_v impeccable_a imprimatur_fw-la gilb_n ironside_n vicecan_a oxon._n octob._n 19_o 1687._o reflection_n on_o the_o historical_a part_n of_o church-government_n part_n v._n he_o that_o be_v first_o in_o his_o own_o cause_n seem_v just_a but_o his_o neighbour_n come_v and_o search_v he_o prov._n 18.17_o oxford_z print_v at_o the_o theater_n anno_fw-la 1687._o the_o introduction_n the_o pamphlet_n propose_v to_o relate_v the_o english_a reformation_n and_o to_o examine_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o it_o now_o from_o a_o examiner_n we_o may_v just_o expect_v argument_n and_o from_o a_o relator_n truth_n how_o he_o argue_v i_o find_v consider_v by_o the_o animadverter_n two_o small_a defect_n he_o have_v be_v charge_v with_o one_a that_o he_o proceed_v upon_o dubious_a or_o false_a premise_n 2_o that_o be_v they_o grant_v his_o conclusion_n will_v not_o follow_v it_o be_v my_o business_n to_o examine_v his_o narrative_a which_o yet_o be_v not_o so_o pure_o historical_a but_o that_o it_o be_v perplex_v with_o dispute_n for_o it_o be_v peculiar_a to_o this_o author_n that_o when_o he_o shall_v reason_v he_o bare_o affirm_v as_o if_o he_o be_v write_v a_o history_n but_o when_o it_o be_v his_o business_n to_o relate_v be_v conscious_a that_o the_o stream_n of_o authority_n be_v against_o he_o he_o be_v force_v to_o dispute_v it_o out_o as_o if_o he_o be_v prove_v a_o problem_n but_o his_o argue_v be_v such_o as_o the_o cause_n will_v bear_v and_o his_o history_n such_o as_o it_o necessary_o require_v the_o former_a have_v gain_v he_o no_o great_a credit_n with_o the_o man_n of_o reason_n and_o this_o i_o doubt_v will_v little_o recommend_v he_o to_o the_o honest_a and_o ingenuous_a but_o i_o forbear_v to_o prejudge_v the_o cause_n and_o desire_v nothing_o may_v be_v far_o charge_v on_o he_o than_o it_o be_v prove_v i_o pretend_v to_o no_o critical_a skill_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o i_o be_o behold_v to_o the_o author_n that_o i_o need_v it_o not_o his_o prevarication_n lie_v so_o open_a that_o a_o novice_n in_o history_n may_v
the_o act_n here_o descant_v upon_o expire_v with_o king_n henry_n and_o it_o will_v be_v time_n enough_o to_o consider_v it_o when_o it_o be_v revive_v again_o if_o prohibition_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n and_o make_v the_o king_n the_o last_o appellee_n be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o reformation_n §_o 33_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v that_o king_n henry_n the_o 2_o and_o all_o his_o bishop_n except_o becket_n be_v reformer_n §_o 34_o some_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v cite_v in_o the_o 34th_o paragraph_n which_o be_v repeal_v by_o king_n edward_n and_o yet_o make_v up_o part_n of_o that_o accumulative_a charge_n which_o be_v lay_v on_o the_o reformation_n even_o the_o six_o article_n be_v urge_v which_o drain_v the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o reformer_n but_o the_o protestant_n in_o justify_v the_o king_n supremacy_n must_v allow_v their_o own_o condemnation_n if_o teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o six_o article_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v all_o those_o who_o own_o a_o authority_n must_v justify_v the_o abuse_n of_o it_o they_o who_o obey_v the_o just_a command_n of_o their_o prince_n must_v obey_v he_o when_o he_o command_v what_o be_v unjust_a father_n walsh_n acknowledge_v i_o suppose_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o he_o think_v himself_o severe_o deal_v with_o when_o he_o be_v censure_v for_o not_o be_v a_o rebel_n have_v quote_v several_a act_n he_o come_v to_o reflect_v upon_o they_o a_o little_a viz._n for_o six_o page_n first_o he_o cope_v with_o arch_a bishop_n bramhal_o but_o i_o shall_v be_v unjust_a to_o that_o prelate_n memory_n if_o in_o so_o unequal_a a_o engagement_n i_o shall_v think_v he_o want_v my_o assistance_n what_o be_v say_v by_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o say_v only_o but_o demonstrate_v this_o author_n have_v urge_v nothing_o against_o he_o but_o what_o he_o may_v have_v fetch_v from_o the_o bishop_n own_o confutation_n of_o sergeant_n the_o question_n here_o discuss_v have_v already_o be_v debate_v in_o the_o 20._o the_o p._n 20._o animadversion_n and_o if_o the_o reader_n desire_v to_o be_v far_o satisfy_v i_o can_v more_o oblige_v he_o then_o by_o send_v he_o to_o the_o most_o reverend_a and_o learned_a author_n he_o will_v find_v there_o a_o just_a and_o solid_a vindication_n of_o a_o noble_a cause_n which_o suffer_v when_o it_o fall_v into_o weak_a management_n and_o be_v make_v part_n of_o a_o occasional_a pamphlet_n have_v catechise_v the_o bishop_n he_o next_o canvase_v that_o statute_n of_o much_o concernment_n that_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v power_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o visit_v repress_v and_o reform_v all_o such_o error_n and_o heresy_n as_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n lawful_o may_v be_v reform_v but_o this_o act_n will_v be_v without_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o author_n cavil_n if_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o power_n by_o which_o the_o king_n visit_v and_o reform_v be_v not_o spiritual_a but_o political_n that_o a_o power_n be_v not_o give_v he_o to_o declare_v error_n but_o to_o repress_v they_o that_o the_o determination_n of_o heresy_n be_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n limit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n 4_o first_o general_n council_n and_o assent_v of_o the_o clergy_n in_o their_o convocation_n that_o the_o king_n have_v not_o all_o the_o power_n give_v he_o which_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n may_v be_v lawful_o exercise_v for_o he_o have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n but_o a_o power_n give_v he_o to_o reform_v all_o heresy_n by_o civil_a authority_n which_o the_o church_n can_v do_v by_o her_o spiritual_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o this_o power_n of_o visit_v and_o reform_v be_v a_o necessary_a invasion_n of_o the_o office_n of_o spiritual_a pastor_n because_o when_o the_o prince_n do_v it_o by_o they_o command_v they_o to_o do_v the_o work_n and_o exact_v of_o they_o a_o discharge_n of_o their_o duty_n he_o do_v this_o without_o usurp_a their_o office_n and_o yet_o do_v it_o by_o a_o power_n distinct_a from_o and_o independent_a on_o they_o and_o last_o that_o the_o prince_n be_v oblige_v to_o take_v care_n that_o all_o act_n of_o reform_v be_v execute_v by_o their_o proper_a minister_n because_o else_o he_o transgress_v the_o power_n prescribe_v in_o this_o statute_n so_o to_o reform_v error_n as_o may_v be_v most_o to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o almighty_a god_n the_o application_n be_v obvious_a and_o will_v satisfy_v the_o reader_n that_o our_o author_n must_v part_v with_o a_o whole_a paragraph_n if_o he_o will_v as_o he_o pretend_v 4._o §._o 35._o n._n 4._o remove_v the_o misinterpretation_n of_o this_o act._n §_o 36_o the_o next_o paragraph_n make_v remark_n upon_o a_o proclamation_n and_o speech_n of_o king_n henry_n and_o some_o word_n of_o cromwell_n which_o be_v very_o justifiable_a if_o it_o be_v either_o necessary_a that_o we_o must_v defend_v they_o or_o the_o defence_n not_o obvious_a to_o every_o one_o who_o think_v his_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o that_o bishop_n gardiner_n be_v too_o great_a a_o courtier_n and_o calvin_n too_o credulous_a §_o 37_o one_o be_v gross_a in_o his_o sense_n of_o the_o supremacy_n and_o the_o other_o zealous_a against_o it_o so_o misrepresent_v which_o will_v then_o begin_v to_o be_v pertinent_a when_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o gardener_n be_v a_o protestant_n and_o calvin_n a_o son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n there_o be_v so_o little_a in_o this_o chapter_n which_o affect_v the_o reformation_n that_o it_o can_v be_v worth_a recapitulate_v a_o reply_n to_o chapter_n the_o 4_o §_o 38_o now_o he_o come_v to_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o 6_o now_o than_o he_o first_o begin_v to_o remember_v the_o title_n of_o his_o book_n here_o he_o find_v all_o the_o supremacy_n confirm_v to_o edward_n the_o six_o which_o be_v former_o concede_v to_o henry_n the_o 8_o and_o yet_o the_o reformer_n be_v accuse_v of_o innovation_n for_o continue_v what_o they_o find_v establish_v by_o roman-catholics_a he_o complain_v of_o the_o repeal_n of_o several_a statute_n make_v in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 39_o but_o by_o the_o church_n be_v mean_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o it_o be_v no_o great_a crime_n in_o a_o reform_a prince_n that_o he_o do_v not_o think_v himself_o oblige_v to_o punish_v with_o death_n all_o her_o determination_n these_o statute_n now_o repeal_v be_v revive_v by_o q._n mary_n and_o again_o repeal_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n which_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o that_o q._n mary_n be_v a_o roman-catholic_a and_o q._n elizabeth_n a_o catholic_a reform_v hence_o he_o infer_v by_o way_n of_o corollary_n that_o the_o trial_n of_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n by_o the_o clergy_n according_a to_o the_o determination_n and_o law_n of_o holy-church_n be_v admit_v or_o exclude_v here_o according_a as_o the_o prince_n be_v catholic_n or_o reform_v this_o sentence_n carry_v two_o face_n and_o be_v capable_a of_o two_o very_a different_a construction_n either_o it_o may_v signify_v that_o the_o clergy_n be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o tryer_n of_o heretic_n according_a as_o the_o prince_n be_v romanist_n or_o reform_v ‖_o ‖_o and_o then_o it_o be_v false_a or_o that_o the_o determination_n of_o holy_a church_n you_o must_v understand_v the_o c._n of_o rome_n be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o such_o trial_n according_a as_o the_o prince_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a or_o reform_a communion_n and_o then_o it_o be_v wonderful_o impertinent_a §_o 40_o this_o seeker_n go_v on_o and_o find_v it_o affirm_v in_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o all_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a be_v derive_v from_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o realm_n of_o england_n but_o if_o he_o have_v please_v he_o may_v have_v find_v too_o that_o this_o act_n be_v repeal_v and_o that_o therefore_o we_o be_v under_o no_o obligation_n to_o defend_v it_o but_o if_o jurisdiction_n be_v understand_v in_o the_o limit_a sense_n before_o explain_v this_o act_n have_v no_o poison_n in_o it_o and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v understand_v by_o any_o one_o who_o consult_v the_o context_n but_o this_o act_n have_v be_v so_o large_o and_o distinct_o discuss_v by_o a_o learned_a power_n learned_a bishop_n sanderson_n episcopacy_n not_o prejudicial_a to_o regal_a power_n casuist_n that_o a_o far_a disquisition_n of_o it_o be_v needless_a the_o change_n of_o election_n of_o bishop_n by_o congee_n d'eslire_fw-la into_o collation_n by_o letters-patent_n be_v a_o bad_a instance_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n for_o if_o such_o collation_n infer_v a_o regal_a supremacy_n those_o who_o have_v read_v that_o bishopric_n be_v original_o donative_n not_o elective_a will_v be_v apt_a to_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n
be_v of_o england_n be_v always_o supreme_a nor_o be_v this_o nomination_n at_o all_o injurious_a to_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o person_n elect_v or_o nominate_v but_o the_o pastor_n consecrate_v but_o we_o have_v he_o again_o cry_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o find_v the_o king_n and_o parliament_n authorise_v arch-bishop_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o act_n to_o take_v information_n concern_v the_o not_o use_v of_o the_o common-prayer_n etc._n etc._n therein_o prescribe_v and_o to_o punish_v the_o same_o by_o excommunication_n etc._n etc._n the_o first_o and_o last_o of_o these_o &_o cs_n be_v very_o artificial_o place_v for_o corrupt_v the_o text._n after_o bishop_n shall_v have_v follow_v chancellor_n and_o commissary_n after_o excommunication_n sequestration_n and_o other_o censure_n and_o process_n so_o that_o the_o authority_n give_v by_o this_o act_n do_v not_o necessary_o respect_v the_o bishop_n and_o that_o power_n of_o excommunicate_v which_o they_o have_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la but_o may_v relate_v to_o the_o power_n give_v to_o chancellor_n and_o commissary_n and_o other_o officer_n who_o plead_v no_o such_o divine_a right_n to_o their_o respective_a function_n or_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v include_v yet_o not_o so_o as_o that_o they_o derive_v the_o power_n of_o excommunicate_v from_o this_o act_n but_o of_o inflict_v the_o other_o punish-ments_a which_o by_o this_o act_n may_v be_v inflict_v or_o let_v we_o suppose_v the_o bishop_n authorise_a by_o this_o act_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o excommunication_n take_v in_o the_o strict_a sense_n for_o internal_a censure_n yet_o this_o will_v be_v no_o injury_n to_o their_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la until_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o because_o god_n have_v give_v the_o bishop_n a_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v therefore_o the_o king_n may_v not_o command_v they_o to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n where_o there_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n §_o 41_o he_o find_v 32_o person_n commission_v to_o reform_v the_o law_n ecclesiastical_a but_o this_o he_o find_v before_o in_o king_n henry_n reign_n where_o it_o have_v already_o be_v consider_v and_o whither_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n as_o often_o as_o this_o author_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o remind_v we_o of_o this_o discovery_n §_o 42_o he_o find_v six_o prelate_n and_o six_o other_o commission_v to_o make_v a_o new_a form_n of_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n he_o may_v have_v find_v that_o this_o act_n as_o well_o as_o the_o former_a be_v make_v at_o the_o 47._o the_o see_v the_o petition_n of_o the_o clergy_n burn._n vol._n 2._o p._n 47._o request_n of_o the_o convocation_n nothing_o be_v by_o he_o except_v against_o the_o form_n itself_o and_o for_o the_o authority_n the_o synod_n petition_v such_o a_o commission_n may_v be_v grant_v the_o 141._o the_o six_o prelate_n and_o six_o divine_n bur._n v._n 2._o p._n 141._o person_n commission_v be_v all_o clergy_n man_n and_o 218._o and_o king_n edward_n article_n art_n 35._o bur._n v._o 2._o coll._n p._n 218._o the_o synod_n confirm_v it_o when_o do_v as_o for_o the_o oath_n against_o the_o pope_n insert_v in_o the_o new_a ordinal_n it_o be_v by_o birth_n a_o roman-catholic_a 1092._o roman-catholic_a fox_n p._n 1092._o king_n henry_n bishop_n take_v it_o without_o scruple_n that_o stand_v that_o compare_v the_o oath_n in_o fox_n with_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n as_o it_o now_o stand_v part_n of_o it_o which_o this_o author_n think_v most_o offensive_a be_v since_o put_v out_o and_o he_o may_v be_v as_o severe_a as_o he_o please_v upon_o a_o nonentity_n the_o heretical_a catechism_n in_o the_o 43_o paragraph_n shall_v be_v speak_v to_o when_o it_o meet_v we_o again_o in_o the_o 166_o §_o 43_o the_o 44_o will_v justify_v a_o protestation_n of_o bishop_n bonner_n which_o that_o bishop_n himself_o 112._o himself_o bur._n v._o 2._o coll._n p._n 112._o recant_v he_o be_v angry_a at_o fox_n for_o call_v that_o protestation_n popish_a but_o the_o prelate_n himself_o in_o his_o recantation_n of_o it_o call_v it_o unadvised_a of_o ill_a ex-example_n unreasonable_a and_o undutiful_a if_o fox_n abuse_v the_o bishop_n it_o be_v because_o popish_a signify_v something_o worse_a than_o all_o these_o §_o 45_o we_o be_v next_o entertain_v with_o a_o confuse_a catalogue_n of_o article_n propose_v to_o bishop_n gardiner_n subscription_n together_o with_o our_o author_n note_n upon_o they_o one_o of_o the_o most_o pertinent_a note_n will_v have_v be_v that_o bishop_n 1357._o bishop_n fox_n p._n 1350._o 1357._o gardiner_n subscribe_v most_o of_o these_o article_n but_o this_o be_v not_o for_o his_o interest_n to_o observe_v his_o remark_n be_v that_o though_o in_o some_o of_o these_o article_n the_o authority_n of_o parliament_n be_v mention_v yet_o in_o none_o of_o these_o be_v any_o thing_n say_v of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o necessary_a to_o make_v such_o parliamentary_a or_o regal_a injunction_n valid_a that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v urge_v to_o this_o bishop_n i_o hope_v he_o do_v not_o deny_v i_o be_o sure_a 119._o sure_a §._o 110._o it_o be_v urge_v by_o r._n that_o in_o the_o charge_n give_v in_o against_o gardener_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o injunction_n be_v of_o all_o man_n for_o all_o sort_n obedient_o receive_v and_o that_o this_o charge_n be_v give_v in_o be_v not_o deny_v in_o the_o reply_n to_o r._n §._o 119._o elsewhere_o he_o confess_v it_o the_o meaning_n must_v be_v that_o this_o consent_n be_v not_o urge_v under_o the_o modality_n of_o make_v the_o regal_a injunction_n valid_a nor_o do_v i_o see_v any_o necessity_n it_o shall_v for_o gardiner_n have_v not_o yet_o so_o far_o refine_v his_o gross_a sense_n of_o the_o supremacy_n but_o that_o he_o still_o own_a his_o obligation_n to_o obey_v his_o majesty_n be_v godly_a injunction_n and_o ordinance_n concern_v religion_n neither_o can_v the_o imposer_n of_o these_o injunction_n according_a to_o their_o principle_n lay_v so_o great_a a_o stress_n on_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n for_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o injunction_n be_v unlawful_a no_o church-autority_n can_v make_v they_o lawful_a but_o if_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n than_o the_o civil_a authority_n without_o the_o synodal_n if_o that_o have_v be_v want_v be_v sufficient_a from_o this_o idle_a remark_n the_o author_n have_v raise_v as_o idle_a a_o consequence_n from_o this_o non-mentioning_a the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n he_o collect_v that_o when_o the_o synodal_n consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v any_o where_o else_o mention_v as_o sometime_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o to_o add_v any_o authority_n to_o these_o injunction_n thereby_o now_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v a_o wild_a inference_n that_o because_o the_o synodal_n consent_n be_v once_o not_o urge_v as_o necessary_a therefore_o whenever_o it_o be_v urge_v it_o be_v think_v to_o add_v no_o authority_n i_o may_v certain_o obey_v my_o prince_n in_o a_o thing_n lawful_a though_o my_o pastor_n do_v not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n exact_a this_o obedience_n from_o i_o but_o when_o they_o both_o require_v the_o same_o duty_n there_o arise_v a_o new_a tie_n of_o obedience_n and_o i_o be_o now_o under_o a_o double_a obligation_n but_o lest_o we_o shall_v wonder_v why_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n never_o plead_v any_o necessity_n of_o the_o synodal_n consent_n the_o author_n conjecture_n the_o reason_n to_o be_v one_a because_o some_o of_o the_o voter_n be_v displace_v and_o so_o their_o suffrage_n less_o authentical_a but_o these_o place_n be_v supply_v and_o then_o i_o will_v know_v why_o those_o who_o succeed_v into_o their_o pastoral_a charge_n do_v not_o also_o succeed_v into_o their_o synodal_n authority_n and_o if_o so_o why_o the_o reformer_n shall_v think_v the_o act_n of_o a_o synod_n less_o authentical_a when_o ridley_n sit_v there_o than_o when_o bonner_n do_v his_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o see_v that_o the_o law_n of_o this_o national_a clergy_n can_v stand_v in_o no_o force_n but_o so_o will_v also_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o synod_n which_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o english_a clergy_n and_o if_o the_o king_n urge_v he_o and_o his_o subject_n freedom_n from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a so_o must_v he_o also_o from_o the_o law_n of_o his_o own_o church_n national_a church_n superior_a synod_n and_o the_o church-vniversal_a be_v word_n which_o sound_v big_a but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v construe_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n signify_v papal_a decree_n superior_a synod_n be_v put_v for_o any_o council_n that_o be_v foreign_a and_o the_o church-vniversal_a dwindle_n into_o roman-catholic_a in_o this_o case_n i_o hope_v we_o may_v obey_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n though_o we_o reject_v a_o usurper_n
of_o it_o be_v allow_v to_o have_v no_o power_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a nor_o be_v the_o clergy_n which_o here_o reverse_v repeal_v and_o eject_v less_o liable_a to_o exception_n for_o the_o first_o change_n be_v not_o of_o religion_n but_o of_o the_o pastor_n and_o the_o reform_a bishop_n be_v eject_v before_o the_o reformation_n 53._o reformation_n see_v they_o reckon_v by_o this_o author_n §._o 53._o thirteen_o prelate_n we_o find_v deprive_v to_o make_v room_n for_o a_o reverse_v hierarchy_n and_o of_o 276._o of_o bur._n v._o 2._o p._n 276._o sixteen-thousand_a inferior_a clergyman_n as_o they_o be_v then_o compute_v 12000_o turn_v out_o for_o commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n of_o matrimony_n as_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o state_n i._n e._n the_o parliament_n it_o be_v none_o we_o be_v tell_v in_o the_o 2_o former_a reign_n and_o sure_o it_o have_v no_o advantage_n in_o this_o if_o it_o be_v remember_v how_o 252._o how_o burn._n v._n 2._o p._n 252._o election_n be_v manage_v and_o how_o predominant_a spanish_a gold_n be_v the_o 4_o next_o paragraph_n give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o thing_n make_v in_o q._n mary_n day_n 50.51.52_o §_o 49_o 50.51.52_o which_o i_o allow_v and_o only_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o carry_v a_o long_a with_o he_o what_o have_v be_v hint_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o §_o 53_o paragraph_n the_o 53_o question_n whether_o this_o clergy_n in_o q._n mary_n day_n be_v a_o lawful_a clergy_n 65._o §._o 54._o ad_fw-la §._o 65._o and_o the_o succeed_a page_n endeavour_v their_o vindication_n the_o bishop_n eject_v by_o q._n mary_n he_o have_v number_v from_o fox_n but_o lest_o we_o shall_v have_v too_o much_o truth_n together_o have_v take_v care_n to_o qualify_v it_o with_o his_o parathese_n fox_n mention_v hooper_n eject_v from_o worcester_n it_o be_v add_v he_o may_v have_v say_v from_o gloucester_n too_o for_o hooper_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o edward_n the_o 6_o be_v time_n hold_v both_o these_o see_v together_o in_o commendam_fw-la our_o author_n may_v have_v spare_v this_o observation_n from_o sanders_n have_v he_o consult_v the_o 396._o the_o burn._n v._n 2._o app._n p._n 396._o appendix_n to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o reformation_n where_o this_o lie_n of_o sanders_n be_v confute_v hooper_n be_v first_o make_v bishop_n of_o gloucester_n which_o before_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o be_v time_n have_v be_v part_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o worcester_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n these_o see_v be_v reunite_v so_o that_o hooper_n have_v not_o two_o bishopric_n but_o one_o that_o have_v for_o some_o year_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o he_o only_o enjoy_v the_o revenue_n of_o gloucester_n for_o worcester_n latimer_n for_o nonconformity_n to_o the_o six_o article_n have_v be_v eject_v out_o of_o it_o or_o for_o fear_n resign_v it_o yet_o for_o what_o reason_n i_o know_v not_o can_v not_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n be_v restore_v to_o it_o this_o again_o be_v a_o transcript_n from_o the_o inexhaustible_a 181._o inexhaustible_a sand._n p._n 181._o sander_n latimer_n 95._o latimer_n bur._n v._o 2._o app._n p._n 385._o 392._o &_o hist_o v._o 2._o p._n 95._o be_v not_o eject_v but_o free_o resign_v his_o bishopric_n upon_o pass_v the_o six_o article_n with_o which_o he_o can_v not_o comply_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n the_o house_n of_o commons_o interpose_v to_o repossess_v he_o but_o he_o refuse_v to_o accept_v of_o any_o preferment_n taylor_n be_v remove_v from_o lincoln_n by_o death_n not_o by_o the_o queen_n as_o appear_v from_o fox_n p._n 1282._o q._n mary_n 257._o mary_n bur._n v._o 2._o coll_n p_o 257._o commission_n for_o displace_v the_o bishop_n be_v extant_a among_o which_o tailor_n be_v one_o fox_n positive_o say_v he_o be_v deprive_v he_o say_v indeed_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v that_o he_o die_v but_o not_o that_o his_o death_n be_v before_o his_o deprivation_n have_v give_v we_o this_o catalogue_n of_o the_o eject_v thus_o adulterate_v with_o his_o false_a mixture_n he_o desire_v we_o in_o vindication_n of_o the_o just_a authority_n of_o q._n mary_n clergy_n to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o ejection_n of_o bishop_n in_o q._n mary_n day_n be_v not_o the_o first_o but_o second_o ejection_n the_o first_o be_v make_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n when_o gardiner_n bonner_n tonstal_n day_n heath_n vesy_n be_v remove_v from_o their_o see_v but_o here_o we_o have_v a_o supernumerary_n put_v in_o to_o enhance_v the_o catalogue_n vesy_n bishop_n vesy_n godw._n catal._n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o deprive_v but_o do_v resign_v his_o character_n in_o history_n be_v so_o scandalous_a that_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v deprive_v and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v pardonable_a to_o have_v guess_v that_o he_o be_v but_o it_o be_v unlucky_a to_o assert_v it_o probably_n he_o say_v some_o other_o be_v remove_v from_o their_o see_v to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v enough_o to_o answer_v probable_o not_o i_o find_v not_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o those_o time_n accurate_o write_v by_o any_o a_o accurate_a writer_n in_o his_o sense_n be_v one_o who_o favour_v his_o own_o cause_n and_o be_v careful_a to_o insert_v a_o necessary_a supplement_n of_o his_o own_o where_o the_o history_n want_v it_o his_o admire_a sander_n be_v in_o this_o sense_n accurate_a enough_o but_o not_o so_o accurate_a as_o our_o author_n can_v have_v wish_v nor_o mr._n fox_n to_o use_v the_o same_o diligence_n in_o number_v the_o change_n of_o clergy_n under_o king_n edward_n as_o he_o do_v that_o under_o q._n mary_n as_o for_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v the_o clergy_n here_o mean_v fox_n mention_n the_o deprivation_n of_o all_o that_o be_v deprive_v and_o it_o be_v because_o he_o have_v not_o this_o author_n diligence_n that_o he_o name_v no_o more_o something_o may_v be_v conjecture_v from_o those_o general_a word_n of_o he_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o bishop_n be_v change_v and_o the_o dumb_a prelate_n compel_v to_o give_v place_n to_o other_o that_o will_v preach_v mr._n fox_n be_v no_o great_a master_n of_o style_n nor_o rigorous_a in_o his_o expression_n from_o which_o our_o author_n will_v make_v advantage_n but_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n his_o cause_n be_v desperate_a when_o he_o be_v force_v thus_o to_o build_v upon_o empty_a conjecture_n the_o deprivation_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o little_a importance_n that_o our_o historian_n shall_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o but_o among_o they_o all_o we_o find_v no_o more_o deprive_v then_o have_v be_v mention_v dr._n heylin_n and_o dr._n burnet_n have_v be_v very_o exact_a in_o this_o particular_a but_o they_o have_v not_o arrive_v to_o our_o author_n diligence_n and_o accuracy_n he_o must_v therefore_o be_v content_a with_o the_o ejection_n of_o only_a 5_o bishop_n in_o king_n edward●s_n time_n which_o he_o promise_v we_o to_o prove_v not_o lawful_a and_o consequent_o the_o eject_v just_o restore_v and_o the_o introduce_v just_o eject_v in_o q._n mary_n time_n the_o ejection_n he_o prove_v not_o lawful_a because_o one_a not_o do_v by_o lawful_a authority_n 2_o nor_o for_o a_o lawful_a cause_n §_o 55_o one_a not_o do_v by_o lawful_a authority_n because_o the_o bishop_n be_v try_v for_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a their_o judge_n be_v the_o king_n commissioner_n but_o neither_o be_v it_o true_a at_o least_o not_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v try_v for_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o king_n commissioner_n among_o who_o be_v the_o metropolitan_a be_v not_o proper_a judge_n in_o such_o cause_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o animadverter_n nor_o can_v the_o authority_n of_o such_o commissioner_n though_o unlawful_a be_v decline_v by_o this_o writer_n who_o present_o will_v prove_v the_o bishop_n in_o q._n mary_n time_n eject_v by_o lawful_a judge_n who_o yet_o be_v no_o other_o than_o that_o queen_n commissioner_n so_o that_o there_o be_v in_o this_o one_o period_n such_o a_o complication_n of_o falsehood_n as_o nothing_o can_v match_v but_o what_o follow_v concern_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o deprivation_n the_o cause_n he_o suppose_v to_o be_v all_o the_o article_n of_o popery_n as_o distinct_a to_o the_o religion_n reform_v their_o not_o own_v the_o king_n supremacy_n nonconformity_n to_o his_o injunction_n not-relinquishing_a the_o use_n of_o former_a church-liturgy_n not_o conform_v to_o the_o new-service_n and_o other_o innovation_n he_o suppose_v he_o have_v by_o this_o time_n confirm_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o reader_n so_o far_o that_o he_o will_v credit_v his_o bare_a assertion_n without_o vouch_v any_o history_n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o can_v have_v falsify_v so_o gross_o have_v not_o a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o sanders_n give_v he_o over_o to_o a_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n tonstal_n
but_o i_o know_v not_o of_o any_o henrician_n creed_n incorporate_v into_o our_o faith_n the_o romanists_n have_v a_o creed_n young_a by_o some_o year_n than_o king_n henry_n but_o nothing_o be_v a_o part_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o what_o spring_v up_o with_o infant-christianity_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o wild_a inference_n that_o because_o we_o own_o the_o king_n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o we_o make_v the_o christian_a religion_n mutable_a do_v we_o make_v act_n of_o parliament_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n there_o will_v be_v ground_n for_o such_o a_o objection_n for_o then_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v enact_v and_o repeal_v at_o pleasure_n and_o he_o who_o be_v orthodox_n in_o one_o session_n may_v become_v a_o heretic_n in_o the_o next_o but_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n a_o rule_n like_o its_o author_n unchangeable_a the_o same_o yesterday_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o the_o christian_a indeed_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o prince_n but_o christianity_n be_v without_o the_o reach_n of_o his_o sword_n nor_o have_v the_o king_n this_o influence_n over_o the_o external_a profession_n of_o religion_n as_o he_o be_v the_o ecclesiastical_a head_n but_o as_o he_o be_v the_o civil_a supreme_a god_n have_v entrust_v he_o as_o such_o with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n with_o a_o command_n indeed_o to_o use_v it_o for_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n but_o with_o a_o natural_a liberty_n still_o of_o use_v it_o for_o the_o protection_n of_o a_o false_a this_o author_n i_o confess_v have_v a_o remedy_n against_o this_o namely_o some_o temporal_a coactive_a power_n lodge_v in_o the_o pope_n in_o order_n to_o dissolve_v upon_o occasion_n the_o coactive_a power_n of_o the_o prince_n but_o we_o do_v not_o envy_v he_o this_o catholicon_n against_o innovation_n passive_a obedience_n be_v our_o principle_n and_o if_o this_o render_v the_o legal_a establishment_n of_o our_o religion_n more_o obnoxious_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n yet_o it_o better_a secure_v our_o common_a christianity_n q._n marry_o therefore_o may_v repeal_v king_n edward_n law_n but_o unless_o she_o can_v repeal_v christ_n law_n too_o ridley_n and_o latimer_n religion_n will_v still_o be_v the_o same_o the_o only_a difference_n be_v that_o the_o faith_n which_o before_o they_o defend_v from_o the_o pulpit_n they_o now_o more_o effectual_o propagate_v at_o the_o stake_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n whilst_o prince_n have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n and_o subject_n be_v oblige_v to_o nonresistance_n the_o supreme_a governor_n will_v have_v a_o influence_n over_o the_o outward_a state_n of_o religion_n and_o he_o that_o complain_v of_o this_o repine_v against_o the_o method_n of_o god_n providence_n it_o be_v no_o blemish_n therefore_o on_o the_o reform_a religion_n which_o be_v here_o dwell_v upon_o by_o this_o author_n that_o it_o go_v forward_o or_o backward_o under_o king_n henry_n according_a as_o his_o different_a passion_n or_o interest_n incline_v he_o whilst_o q._n ann_n live_v it_o have_v indifferent_a success_n say_v fox_n here_o then_o say_v our_o witty_a observer_n the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v direct_v by_o a_o woman_n and_o manage_v the_o affair_n of_o religion_n according_o now_o admit_v this_o be_v a_o truth_n which_o have_v escape_v he_o yet_o the_o curious_a editor_n i_o doubt_v not_o among_o his_o collection_n have_v meet_v with_o a_o medal_n represent_v donna_n olympia_n with_o the_o pope_n mitre_n on_o her_o head_n and_o st._n peter_n key_n in_o her_o hand_n and_o on_o the_o reverse_n the_o pope_n with_o his_o head_n dress_v like_o a_o lady_n and_o a_o spindle_n in_o his_o hand_n be_v it_o also_o true_a that_o cromwell_n a_o laic_a have_v the_o total_a management_n of_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n under_o king_n henry_n yet_o any_o one_o who_o be_v conversant_a in_o history_n know_v that_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o popedom_n have_v be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o more_o obnoxious_a favourite_n §_o 86_o what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o next_o paragraph_n be_v not_o of_o more_o moment_n here_o then_o when_o first_o mention_v in_o paragraph_n the_o 19_o §_o 87_o by_o virtue_n of_o such_o supremacy_n he_o take_v possession_n of_o all_o the_o monastery_n and_o religious_a house_n our_o prolix_a author_n who_o never_o spare_v his_o own_o labour_n or_o his_o reader_n be_v patience_n have_v enlarge_v upon_o this_o point_n for_o 12_o paragraph_n and_o be_v very_o copious_a against_o sacrilege_n but_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o our_o cause_n be_v concern_v in_o this_o charge_n avarice_n and_o sacrilege_n be_v as_o great_a sin_n in_o our_o homily_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o popish_a canon_n and_o cranmer_n and_o ridley_n be_v as_o severe_a against_o rob_v the_o church_n as_o this_o declaimer_n we_o be_v no_o more_o concern_v to_o defend_v king_n henry_n rapine_n than_o the_o lust_n some_o have_v charge_v he_o with_o be_v the_o suppression_n of_o abbey_n as_o great_a a_o crime_n as_o it_o be_v here_o under_o false_a colour_n represent_v i_o do_v not_o see_v why_o we_o be_v more_o oblige_v to_o plead_v in_o its_o favour_n than_o this_o writer_n will_v think_v himself_o bind_v because_o he_o assert_v the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n to_o justify_v the_o foul_a and_o unparalleled_a enormity_n of_o those_o who_o have_v sit_v in_o st._n peter_n chair_n but_o be_v the_o dissolution_n of_o monastery_n represent_v impartial_o it_o will_v be_v easy_a be_v it_o necessary_a to_o give_v it_o a_o fair_a appearance_n and_o it_o must_v be_v at_o last_o confess_v that_o the_o fault_n of_o king_n henry_n be_v not_o so_o much_o in_o take_v away_o those_o foundation_n of_o superstition_n as_o in_o not_o apply_v all_o the_o revenue_n as_o he_o do_v some_o and_o have_v do_v more_o if_o the_o reformer_n have_v have_v more_o influence_n over_o he_o to_o use_v true_o religious_a by_o virtue_n of_o such_o a_o supremacy_n he_o make_v order_n and_o give_v dispensation_n in_o matter_n of_o marriage_n 99.100_o §._o 99.100_o of_o fast_n of_o holyday_n of_o election_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n and_o challenge_v a_o power_n of_o abrogate_a several_a other_o ceremony_n it_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v show_v that_o any_o constitution_n concern_v these_o do_v ever_o oblige_v we_o but_o such_o as_o either_o be_v make_v and_o ordain_v within_o this_o realm_n or_o such_o other_o as_o be_v induce_v into_o the_o realm_n by_o sufferance_n consent_n and_o custom_n for_o until_o this_o proposition_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o statute_n c._n statute_n 25._o of_o hen._n 8.27_o c._n be_v disprove_v the_o assumption_n there_o that_o the_o state_n have_v power_n to_o dispense_v with_o its_o own_o law_n will_v be_v unshaken_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n with_o this_o author_n be_v another_o expression_n for_o papal_a decree_n the_o authority_n therefore_o which_o support_v they_o be_v just_o take_v away_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o they_o fall_v with_o it_o among_o the_o rite_n which_o king_n henry_n command_v to_o be_v observe_v till_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o alter_v they_o fox_n reckon_v pay_v of_o tithe_n where_o this_o annotator_n observe_v that_o tithe_n be_v here_o conceive_v to_o be_v in_o the_o disposal_n of_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n now_o whether_o king_n henry_n think_v tithe_n to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o not_o do_v not_o concern_v the_o reformation_n but_o what_o be_v here_o say_v of_o payment_n of_o tithe_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o he_o think_v they_o alienable_a from_o the_o clergy_n for_o he_o may_v by_o his_o law_n regulate_v the_o payment_n of_o they_o though_o he_o do_v not_o think_v they_o disposable_a in_o this_o author_n sense_n several_a statute_n be_v make_v in_o his_o reign_n for_o the_o better_a secure_v this_o right_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o they_o 20._o they_o 27._o hen._n 8._o c._n 20._o tithe_n be_v say_v to_o be_v due_a to_o god_n and_o the_o church_n the_o detainer_n of_o they_o to_o have_v no_o regard_n of_o their_o 7._o their_o 32._o hen._n 8._o c._n 7._o duty_n to_o almighty_a god_n and_o the_o 1._o the_o ref._n leg._n tit._n de_fw-la decimis_fw-la cap._n 1._o reformatio_fw-la legum_fw-la derive_v the_o clergy_n original_a right_n to_o they_o from_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n §_o 101_o by_o virtue_n of_o such_o supremacy_n he_o without_o any_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n by_o his_o vicegerent_n cromwell_n order_v that_o english_a bibles_n shall_v be_v provide_v and_o put_v in_o every_o church_n the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v petition_v by_o the_o 2_o 195._o 2_o bur._n v._o 1._o p._n 195._o house_n of_o convocation_n and_o the_o publication_n of_o it_o be_v include_v in_o that_o request_n this_o act_n therefore_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o
sword_n and_o lest_o it_o be_v think_v that_o in_o this_o subscription_n he_o be_v overrule_v by_o a_o majority_n in_o a_o 71._o a_o bur._n v._o 2._o p._n 71._o work_n which_o be_v whole_o his_o own_o without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o any_o other_o he_o set_v forth_o their_o divine_a institution_n posterity_n say_v our_o commentator_n may_v have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v cover_v this_o nakedness_n of_o their_o forefather_n then_o to_o have_v publish_v it_o after_o so_o great_a silence_n a_o caution_n this_o of_o great_a use_n to_o the_o follower_n of_o ignatius_n and_o francis_n but_o till_o we_o come_v to_o draw_v parallel_n betwixt_o cranmer_n and_o our_o saviour_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o own_o in_o he_o the_o frailty_n of_o a_o man._n §_o 106_o king_n edward_n send_v out_o injunction_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n true_a and_o these_o contrary_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o former_a oblige_a council_n which_o till_o the_o four_o former_a part_n of_o church-government_n be_v publish_v i_o may_v safe_o deny_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o a_o synod_n the_o act_n of_o which_o only_o have_v force_n in_o such_o matter_n this_o have_v be_v say_v often_o but_o never_o yet_o attempt_v to_o be_v prove_v §_o 107_o he_o next_o present_v we_o with_o a_o summary_n of_o the_o king_n proceed_n from_o fox_n but_o according_a to_o his_o usual_a method_n very_o much_o interpolate_v man_n of_o learning_n be_v send_v for_o from_o foreign_a country_n say_v fox_n which_o argue_v scarcity_n at_o home_n of_o those_o clergy_n who_o will_v second_v the_o king_n reformation_n say_v the_o comment_n after_o his_o rate_n of_o argue_v very_o possible_o it_o may_v man_n of_o great_a learning_n say_v traveller_n be_v at_o this_o time_n great_a rarity_n in_o some_o popish_a country_n yet_o my_o logic_n give_v i_o no_o encouragement_n to_o argue_v that_o in_o those_o place_n there_o be_v a_o scarcity_n of_o popish_a clergy_n among_o those_o scent_n for_o say_v fox_n be_v peter_n martyr_n martin_n bucer_n and_o paulus_n fagius_n he_o may_v have_v add_v say_v the_o parathesis_n bernardus_n ochinus_n have_v he_o be_v as_o much_o delight_v in_o add_v as_o we_o find_v this_o church-governor_n he_o no_o doubt_n will_v have_v add_v it_o but_o mr._n fox_n very_o probable_o have_v not_o read_v that_o ochinus_n be_v send_v for_o and_o therefore_o beside_o other_o reason_n make_v conscience_n of_o say_v it_o martyr_n teach_v at_o oxford_n bucer_n and_o fagius_n at_o cambridge_n say_v fox_n sure_o say_v our_o author_n not_o because_o the_o university_n be_v not_o hold_v so_o learned_a but_o because_o they_o be_v not_o count_v so_o orthodox_n very_o sure_o it_o be_v that_o a_o composition_n of_o both_o be_v require_v and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o in_o the_o very_a dawning_n of_o reformation_n person_n so_o qualify_v be_v very_o rare_a fox_n add_v and_o that_o with_o no_o small_a commendation_n of_o the_o whole_a university_n the_o author_n put_v in_o not_o without_o opposition_n of_o many_o learned_a man_n there_o and_o recommend_v to_o our_o read_n when_o at_o leisure_n the_o rational_a arguing_n of_o mr._n glyn_n mr._n langdale_n and_o other_o against_o the_o reformer_n how_o rational_a their_o arguing_n be_v he_o that_o be_v at_o leisure_n may_v consider_v but_o this_o writer_n have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o his_o own_o that_o i_o doubt_v his_o judgement_n will_v little_o recommend_v they_o but_o since_o he_o have_v impose_v this_o task_n upon_o we_o i_o hope_v by_o way_n of_o return_n he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o peruse_v the_o dialogue_n between_o custom_n and_o verity_n which_o immediate_o follow_v that_o part_n of_o fox_n which_o he_o have_v assign_v we_o as_o for_o the_o oxford_n opposition_n peter_n martyr_n relation_n be_v perhaps_o not_o the_o most_o impartial_a and_o some_o may_v say_v our_o church-governor_n be_v perhaps_o not_o the_o most_o honest_a for_o if_o by_o this_o scrupulosity_n of_o expression_n he_o will_v insinuate_v that_o martyr_n be_v partial_a this_o be_v a_o calumny_n borrow_a from_o sanders_n and_o reply_v to_o by_o his_o 394._o his_o bur._n v._o 2._o app._n p._n 394._o confuter_n you_o may_v find_v in_o his_o opponent_n tresham_n chadsey_n and_o morgan_n much_o learning_n reverence_n to_o the_o church_n and_o zeal_n in_o their_o cause_n i_o have_v not_o the_o relation_n by_o i_o and_o therefore_o can_v pass_v no_o judgement_n on_o this_o learned_a triumvirate_n but_o as_o for_o tresham_n we_o have_v a_o specimen_fw-la in_o fox_n 1475._o fox_n fox_n p._n 1475._o how_o great_a a_o talon_n he_o be_v master_n of_o in_o dispute_v be_v pro-sub-dean_n of_o christ-church_n he_o call_v all_o the_o student_n together_o and_o recommend_v popery_n to_o they_o upon_o these_o convince_a ground_n one_a he_o urge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o goodly_a company_n of_o cope_n that_o be_v appoint_v to_o windsor_n but_o he_o have_v find_v the_o queen_n so_o gracious_a to_o he_o that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o christ-church_n now_o if_o they_o like_o honest_a man_n will_v come_v to_o mass_n they_o shall_v wear_v they_o on_o holiday_n a_o second_o motive_n be_v that_o he_o will_v get_v they_o the_o lady-bell_n of_o bampton_n and_o that_o shall_v make_v the_o sweet_a ring_n in_o all_o england_n the_o three_o be_v that_o as_o for_o a_o holy-water-sprinkle_a he_o have_v already_o the_o fair_a within_o this_o realm_n he_o think_v therefore_o no_o man_n will_v be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o forego_v these_o commodity_n it_o may_v be_v needless_a to_o remark_n to_o the_o gentleman_n of_o that_o foundation_n that_o our_o adversary_n be_v still_o the_o same_o dangerous_a orator_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o shall_v have_v irrecoverable_o engage_v his_o affection_n to_o a_o pretty_a pair_n of_o bead_n or_o set_v his_o heart_n immoderate_o upon_o the_o great_a bell_n it_o concern_v he_o to_o have_v a_o guard_n upon_o himself_o the_o author_n have_v muster_v up_o the_o bishop_n eject_v in_o king_n edward_n day_n add_v pate_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n goldwel_n bishop_n of_o st._n asaph_n bishop_n elect_v of_o bangor_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v banish_v if_o the_o author_n be_v jesuit_n enough_o to_o say_v this_o to_o himself_o before_o he_o write_v it_o he_o may_v come_v off_o if_o not_o it_o will_v prove_v a_o most_o unconscionable_a gasconade_n pate_n 324._o pate_n godw._n catal._n of_o bishop_n in_o worcester_n bur._n v._o 2._o p._n 324._o be_v never_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n but_o of_o worcester_n he_o be_v not_o banish_v but_o flee_v and_o this_o not_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n but_o in_o king_n henry_n so_o here_o be_v multum_fw-la in_o parvo_fw-la goldwell_n 224._o goldwell_n heylin_n history_n p._n 224._o be_v not_o bishop_n of_o st._n asaph_n nor_o any_o other_o bishop_n till_o a._n 1555._o which_o be_v in_o q._n mary_n time_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a prolepsis_n to_o make_v he_o one_o of_o the_o exile_a bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n anonymus_fw-la long-stroke_n bishop_n elect_n of_o bangor_n be_v one_o of_o our_o author_n be_v own_o creation_n some_o more_o he_o say_v may_v be_v remove_v in_o like_a manner_n who_o happen_v not_o to_o be_v mention_v because_o decease_v before_o the_o reign_n of_o q._n mary_n as_o wakeman_n bishop_n of_o gloucester_n holbeck_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n skyp_v bishop_n of_o hereford_n rugg_n bishop_n of_o norwich_n no_o doubt_v they_o may_v have_v be_v if_o this_o church-governor_n have_v please_v for_o never_o committee-man_n eject_v more_o arbitrary_o than_o he_o but_o that_o they_o actual_o be_v not_o remove_v we_o have_v these_o good_a reason_n to_o think_v the_o ejection_n of_o bishop_n be_v particular_o insist_v on_o by_o our_o historian_n but_o these_o bishop_n make_v none_o of_o the_o number_n all_o these_o bishop_n do_v happen_v to_o be_v mention_v not_o as_o deprive_v but_o decease_v though_o their_o deprivation_n have_v deserve_v mention_v as_o well_o as_o their_o death_n 90._o death_n burn._n v._n 2._o p._n 152._o heylin_n hist_n p_o 90._o wakeman_n die_v in_o dec._n 1549._o 129._o 1549._o burn._n v._n 2._o p._n 203._o heylin_n hist_n p._n 129._o holbeck_n in_o august_n 1551._o 218._o 1551._o burn._n v._n 2._o p._n 218._o skyp_n in_o the_o year_n 1552._o rugg_n die_v in_o the_o year_n 1550_o according_a to_o norwich_n to_o godwin_n catalogue_n in_o norwich_n godwin_n dr._n burnet_n 150._o burnet_n burn._n v._n 2._o p._n 150._o call_v he_o reps_n and_o say_v heresign_v so_o that_o what_o our_o author_n have_v insert_v here_o de_fw-fr proprio_fw-la be_v like_a to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o one_o continue_a forgery_n the_o next_o two_o paragraph_n have_v more_o truth_n in_o they_o 108.109_o §._o 108.109_o be_v transcribe_v from_o fox_n but_o the_o proclamation_n inhibit_v the_o whole_a clergy_n to_o preach_v cite_v from_o fuller_n be_v question_v by_o
nor_o be_v we_o quit_v from_o our_o obligation_n to_o the_o just_a authority_n of_o our_o own_o bishop_n because_o we_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o invasion_n of_o forreigner_n but_o if_o by_o church-vniversal_a and_o superior_a synod_n be_v mean_v what_o other_o people_n understand_v by_o those_o word_n it_o rest_v to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o reform_a plead_v a_o exemption_n from_o their_o authority_n §_o 46_o the_o 46th_o paragraph_n tell_v we_o of_o god_n just_a judgement_n on_o bishop_n gardiner_n for_o have_v so_o zealous_o abet_v the_o king_n supremacy_n but_o the_o divine_a judgement_n be_v different_o interpret_v according_a to_o the_o different_a sentiment_n of_o the_o interpreter_n other_o writer_n tell_v we_o of_o severe_a judgement_n inflict_v on_o this_o prelate_n than_o deprivation_n and_o that_o for_o more_o flagrant_a crime_n then_o assert_v the_o regal_a supremacy_n he_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o the_o resentment_n of_o the_o clergy_n for_o their_o lose_a synodal_n authority_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o extreme_a of_o raise_v the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n too_o high_a in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n have_v now_o produce_v another_o of_o depress_v it_o too_o much_o but_o this_o be_v the_o infelicity_n of_o the_o clergy_n not_o their_o crime_n the_o same_o authority_n which_o tell_v we_o the_o clergy_n complain_v of_o this_o tell_v we_o also_o that_o those_o complainer_n be_v the_o reformer_n but_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n which_o be_v industrious_o conceal_v and_o the_o citation_n mangle_v lest_o it_o shall_v confess_v too_o much_o haec_fw-la discrimina_fw-la pati_fw-la clericis_fw-la iniquum_fw-la atque_fw-la grave_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o from_o the_o antiquitates_fw-la britannicae_n clericis_fw-la multo_fw-la jam_fw-la acrius_fw-la atque_fw-la vigilantius_fw-la in_o divina_fw-la veritate_fw-la quam_fw-la unquam_fw-la antea_fw-la laborantibus_fw-la say_v the_o antiquity_n this_o omission_n i_o believe_v be_v not_o for_o brevity_n sake_n for_o he_o do_v not_o use_v to_o be_v so_o frugal_a in_o his_o citation_n but_o the_o reader_n be_v to_o understand_v by_o clerici_fw-la the_o popish_a clergy_n exclusive_o to_o all_o other_o and_o the_o decay_n of_o synodal_n authority_n be_v to_o be_v represent_v not_o as_o the_o grievance_n but_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o reformer_n for_o this_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o we_o find_v this_o author_n indecent_o insult_v oven_n that_o pious_a martyr_n bishop_n hooper_n all_o which_o i_o shall_v observe_v of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o what_o be_v here_o say_v of_o this_o bishop_n appeal_n from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a to_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v applicable_a to_o st._n paul_n 25.11_o paul_n act_n 25.11_o appeal_n to_o caesar_n the_o cause_n then_o be_v ecclesiastical_a for_o they_o 25.19_o they_o act_n 25.19_o have_v certain_a question_n against_o he_o of_o their_o own_o superstition_n and_o the_o bishop_n may_v have_v use_v st._n paul_n plea_n 24.14_o plea_n act_n 24.14_o that_o after_o the_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n so_o worship_v he_o the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n this_o chapter_n more_o near_o concern_v the_o reformation_n it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o give_v a_o brief_a summary_n of_o what_o be_v perform_v in_o it_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o the_o supremacy_n be_v confirm_v to_o edward_n the_o 6_o which_o be_v concede_v to_o henry_n the_o 8_o but_o no_o reason_n be_v give_v why_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v diminish_v that_o some_o statute_n against_o heretic_n be_v repeal_v but_o this_o repeal_v not_o show_v to_o be_v without_o good_a reason_n or_o good_a authority_n that_o all_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_n be_v say_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o prince_n but_o this_o expression_n take_v in_o a_o due_a sense_n may_v be_v justify_v and_o if_o it_o can_v not_o the_o act_n be_v void_a we_o be_v under_o no_o obligation_n to_o defend_v it_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v authorise_a by_o virtue_n of_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n to_o excommunicate_v but_o this_o interpretation_n be_v force_v upon_o the_o statute_n and_o the_o word_n take_v even_o in_o this_o sense_n will_v not_o bear_v the_o stress_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o they_o that_o 32_o commissioner_n be_v appoint_v to_o reform_v the_o law_n ecclesiastical_a and_o 6_o prelate_n with_o 6_o other_o to_o reform_v the_o ordinal_n but_o nothing_o say_v to_o show_v that_o these_o do_v not_o want_v a_o reformation_n or_o that_o the_o person_n commission_v be_v not_o qualify_v for_o such_o a_o trust_n and_o these_o two_o urge_v as_o the_o mere_a effect_n of_o parliamentary_a supremacy_n which_o be_v the_o synodical_a request_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o a_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v impose_v on_o person_n enter_v into_o holy_a order_n but_o this_o oath_n invent_v by_o papist_n and_o in_o that_o part_n which_o give_v offence_n since_o alter_v that_o a_o hypothetical_n submission_n of_o bonner_n be_v not_o accept_v but_o this_o such_o a_o submission_n as_o that_o bishop_n recant_v that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v once_o not_o urge_v as_o necessary_a to_o make_v the_o regal_a injunction_n valid_a but_o no_o reason_n assign_v why_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v that_o the_o clergy_n complain_v of_o their_o lose_a synodal_n authority_n but_o these_o the_o reformer_n who_o yet_o be_v accuse_v of_o be_v no_o friend_n to_o it_o that_o bishop_n hooper_n appeal_v to_o the_o civil_a power_n but_o so_o also_o do_v st._n paul_n the_o title_n of_o this_o chapter_n lest_o the_o content_n may_v have_v make_v the_o reader_n forget_v it_o be_v the_o supremacy_n claim_v by_o king_n edward_n the_o 6_o a_o reply_n to_o chapter_n the_o 5_o we_o be_v come_v now_o to_o q._n mary_n reign_n the_o fatal_a revolution_n of_o which_o we_o will_v willing_o forget_v do_v not_o the_o unseasonable_a importunity_n of_o these_o man_n refresh_v our_o memory_n our_o author_n have_v act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o skilful_a painter_n have_v he_o cast_v a_o veil_n over_o this_o piece_n of_o his_o history_n for_o the_o calamity_n of_o this_o reign_n tend_v little_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o that_o religion_n and_o be_v never_o proper_o insist_v on_o but_o by_o those_o who_o write_v invective_n against_o popery_n but_o those_o reflection_n which_o create_v horror_n in_o other_o man_n breast_n seem_v to_o have_v a_o different_a effect_n on_o this_o writer_n for_o in_o his_o entrance_n upon_o this_o reign_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o discover_v such_o a_o new_a warmth_n and_o vigour_n in_o his_o expression_n as_o betray_v he_o to_o be_v in_o a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a rapture_n all_o that_o have_v be_v do_v in_o the_o two_o former_a reign_n by_o prince_n by_o state_n or_o by_o clergy_n be_v now_o by_o a_o equal_a authority_n of_o prince_n clergy_n and_o state_n reverse_v repeal_v eject_v his_o discourse_n here_o have_v put_v on_o a_o new_a air_n and_o like_o the_o orator_n in_o his_o triumph_n over_o exile_a catiline_n he_o prosecute_v decline_v heresy_n with_o a_o abiit_fw-la excessit_fw-la evasit_fw-la but_o here_o to_o moderate_v his_o acclamation_n let_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o this_o prince_n who_o thus_o reverse_v repeal_v and_o eject_v be_v the_o same_o 237._o same_o burn._n v._n 2._o p_o 237._o that_o give_v the_o suffolk_n man_n full_a assurance_n that_o she_o will_v never_o make_v any_o innovation_n or_o change_n in_o religion_n the_o same_o that_o make_v a_o open_a declaration_n in_o council_n 245._o council_n bur._n v._o 2._o p._n 245._o that_o though_o her_o own_o conscience_n be_v stay_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n yet_o she_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o compel_v or_o restrain_v other_o so_o that_o this_o after_o repeal_n reflect_v severe_o on_o those_o guide_n who_o have_v the_o government_n of_o her_o conscience_n and_o those_o principle_n by_o which_o she_o act_v lay-supremacy_n be_v indeed_o at_o last_o eject_v by_o she_o but_o not_o till_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o reformation_n be_v reverse_v by_o its_o influence_n if_o send_v out_o injunction_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a use_v the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n convoke_v synod_n eject_v bishop_n by_o commission_n prohibit_v some_o preacher_n licens_v other_o inhibit_v the_o pope_n legate_n to_o come_v into_o the_o kingdom_n if_o these_o i_o say_v be_v admit_v to_o be_v sign_n of_o a_o lay-supremacy_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o q._n mary_n be_v such_o a_o supreme_a it_o be_v not_o therefore_o regal_a supremacy_n as_o such_o but_o as_o countenance_v the_o reformation_n which_o these_o man_n condemn_v those_o power_n which_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n be_v invasion_n of_o the_o church_n right_a do_v in_o this_o easy_o escape_v our_o author_n censure_n we_o be_v tell_v now_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o prince_n when_o protestantism_n be_v to_o be_v deface_v who_o in_o the_o establishment_n